Jump to content
IndiaDivine.org

Sri Vishnu Sahasranamam and meaning

Rate this topic


Guest guest

Recommended Posts

Vishnu Sahasranamam

 

(Meanings: based upon the commentary of Shankaracharya)

 

Meanings: Courtesy: http://www.mypurohith.com

 

Sanskrit script courtesy: Shri. N. Krishnamachari:

http://home.attbi.com/~chinnamma/

 

Vishnu Sahasranama means the "Thousand Names of Vishnu." This

narrative is based upon the commentary of Shankaracharya. Acharya

sankara reached the feet of his Guru, Sri Govindapaachaarya, and on

the bank of Narmada, the Nambootiri-boy from kaaladi got initiated

into the secrets of the Mahaavaakyas. At the end of his short but

intense study, sankara, the inspired missionary, wanting to fulfill

his glorious work, craved from the blessings of his teacher.

Govindapa Acharya tested sankara by ordering him to write an

exhaustive commentary (Bhaashya) upon the Vishnu Sahasranaama. He

accomplished his great task and the very first work of the

Upanishadic commentator, sankara, the greatst Hindu missionary of the

7 th century, thus came to see the light of the day.

 

Govindaacharya, satisfied with the proficiency of the student blessed

him and set him on the road of service and action. Earning the grace

of the teacher and the blessings of the Lord Vishnu, Sri sankara

inaugurated an incomparable revival movement of the decadent culture

of the 7th century Hinduism. We shall here follow closely Sankara's

commentary and also draw our material from the Puranic literature

that has an endless store of appeal to the hearts of all devotees.

 

The Vishnu Sahasranaama was composed by Sri Veda Vyaasa, the author

of the Puraanas, and we meet this great chant in his classical work,

the Mahaabaarata, Prince Yudhisthira, the eldest of the pandavas, at

the end of the war approached Bheeshma Pitaamaha, when the mighty

grandsire of the Kuru family was lying on the bed of arrows,

unconquered and in conquerable, awaiting the scared hour of his

departure to the feet of the lord. Yudhishthira, the righteous, asked

six questions, Bheeshma, the constant devotee of Krishna, the

gigantic Man of Action, calmly answered them all. This is how we find

the "Thousand Names of Lord Vishnu" introduced in the immortal

classic of the Hindus, the Mahaabaarata.

 

For the eradication of all obstructions, I meditate ("dhyayeth") on

Vishnu, who is wearing ("dharam") a white ("shukla") cloth

("ambara"), who is of the color ("varnam") of the moon ("sashi"), who

has four ("chatur") arms ("bhujam"), and who has a placid expression

("prasanna") on His face ("vadanam").

 

 

Shree Vaisham pãyana uvacha:

Shruthvã dharmãna séshéna pãvananicha sarvashaha

Yudhishtara shanthanavam punarévãbya bashatha

 

Vaisampayana, the narrator to Dhritrastra says: Yudhishthira, as a

righteous man ("dharamana") of spiritual inclination, with the mortal

integrity ("paavanaani") of a careful mortal, asks ("bhaashatha")

Bhishma ("shaantanavam") quite an interesting set of questions which

are typical queries which the heart of seekers will always ask.

 

 

 

Yudhishtira uvacha

Kimékam daivatham loke kim vápyekam parãyanam

 

Sthuvantha kam kamarchanda prapnuyur mãnavã shubam

 

 

 

Who ("kim") is the greatest ("ekam") Lord ("daivatam") in the world

("loke")?

 

Who is the one ("ekam") refuge ("paraayanam") for all?

 

By glorifying ("sthuvantah") whom ("kam") can man ("manavah") reach

the Auspiciousness ("shubam") (peace and prosperity)?

 

By worshipping ("archantah") whom can a man reach

auspiciousness (peace and prosperity)?

 

Ko dharma sarva dharmãnam bhavatha paramo mathaha

 

Kim japan muchyathé janthur janma samsãra bandhanãth

 

 

 

What ("ko") is, in thy opinion, the Greatest Dharma?

 

By ("kim") doing japa of what can "creatures" (jantu) go beyond

("mutchyate") the bonds ("bandhanaath") of samsara?

 

Shree Bheeshmã Uvacha

Jagath prabhum deva devam antham purushothamam

Sthuvan nãma sahasréna purusha saththo thithaha

 

The supreme ("uttamam") Purusha, who is ever up and working for the

welfare of all, the Lord ("prabhum") of the world ("jagat") the

endless ("anantam") – Sri Maha Vishnu.

 

Thameva chãr chayanth nithyam bhakthya purusha mavyayam

Dhayãyan sthuvan namasyamsha yajamãnas thamevacha 10

 

By meditating upon ("sthuvan naama"), by ("cha") worshipping

("archayan") and by prostrating at the same Purusha, man can reach

true Auspiciousness.

 

Anãdhinidhanam vishnum sarva lokamahesvaram

Lokãdhyaksham sthuvan nithyam sarva dhukkã thigo bhavéth

 

The greatest Dharma is the one Vishnu, who has neither a beginning

(Aadi) nor an end (Nidhanam), the supreme Lord ("maheshwaram") of the

world. All creatures can go beyond the bonds of samsar, "and he goes

beyond all sorrows" who daily ("nityam") chants ("stuvan") the

sahasranaamas and within glorifies "the knower of the world"

(Lokaadhyaksha).

 

Brahmanyam sarva dharmangyam lokãnãm keerthivardhanam

Lokanãtham mahath bhootham sarva bhootha bhavothbhavam

 

Esha mé sarvadharmãnãm dharmodhi kathamo mathaha

Yath bhakthyã pundari kãksham sthavai rar-chén nara ssatha

 

Paramam yo mahath teja paramam yo mahath thapaha

Paramam yo mahath brahma paramam ya parãyanam

 

He who is the great ("mahat") effulgence ("tejah"); He who is the

Great controller ("tapah"); He who is the Supreme All-Pervading

Truth; ("brahma") he who is the Highest (Param) Goal (Ayanam)-the

Lord Vishnu.

 

Pavithrãm pavithram yo mangalãnãncha mangalam

Daivatham dévathãnãncha bhoothãnãm yovyaya pithã 15

 

He who is ("yo") the very sanctity ("pavitram") that sanctifies all

sacred things ("pavitraanaam"); he who is most auspicious

("mangalam"); he who is the god ("devataa") of gods ("daivatam"); he

who is the eternal ("avyayah") father ("pitaa") of all creatures

("bhootaanaam") is the one god – VISHNU.

 

Yatha sarvãni bhoothãni bhavanthyãdhi yugãgamé

Yasmimscha pralayam yãnthi punaréva yugakshayé

 

Thasya loka pradhãnasya jagan-nãdhasya bhoopathé

Vishnor nama sahasrm mé srunu pãpa bhayãpaham

 

Yãni nãmãni gounãni vikyãthãni mahãthmanaha

Rushibhi parigeerthãni thãni vakshãyãmi bhoothayé

 

Rushirnãmnãm sahasrasya védhavyãso mahãmunihi

Chchando-nushtup thadha dhévo bhaghavãn dhévagee-suthaha

 

Amruthãm soothbhavo bheejam shakthir dhévaki nandhanaha

Thrisãmã hrudhayam thasya shãnthyarthé viniyujyathe 20

 

Vishnum jishnum mahãvishnum prabhavishum mahéswaram

Anaika roopa dhaithyãntham namãmi purushoth-thamam

 

 

 

-------------------------Meanings of

the Dialogue---------------

 

Yudhistirau Uvaachaa:

 

(Question 1.) Kim ekam daivatam loke?

 

 

 

Who ("kim") is the greatest ("ekam") Lord ("daivatam") in the world

("loke")?

 

 

 

(Answer 1.)

 

Pavitraanaam pavitram yo

Mangalaanaam cha mangalam

 

Daivatam devataanam cha

Bhootaanam yo avyayah pitaa.

 

 

 

He who is ("yo") the very sanctity ("pavitram") that sanctifies all

sacred things ("pavitraanaam"); he who is most auspicious

("mangalam"); he who is the god ("devataa") of gods ("daivatam"); he

who is the eternal ("avyayah") father ("pitaa") of all creatures

("bhootaanaam") is the one god – VISHNU.

 

 

 

----

----

 

 

 

(Question 2. ) Kim vaapyekam paraayanam?

 

 

Who is the one ("ekam") refuge ("paraayanam") for

all?

 

(Answer 2.)

 

Paramam yo mahat-tejah Paramam yo mahat-tapah

Paramam yo mahat-brahma Paramam yah paraayanam.

 

 

 

He who is the great ("mahat") effulgence ("tejah"); He who is the

Great controller ("tapah"); He who is the Supreme All-Pervading

Truth; ("brahma") he who is the Highest (Param) Goal (Ayanam)-the

Lord Vishnu.

 

 

 

----

----

 

 

 

(Question 3.) Stuvantam kam praapnuyuh (

Maanavah subham)?

 

 

 

By glorifying ("sthuvantah") whom ("kam") can man ("manavah") reach

the Auspiciousness ("shubam") (peace and prosperity)?

 

 

 

 

 

Answer 3.

 

Jagat-prabhum deva-devam

Anantam purushottamam

Stuvan naama-sahasrena

Purushah satatotthitah.

 

 

 

The supreme ("uttamam") Purusha, who is ever up and dong for the

welfare of all, the Lord ("prabhum") of the world ("jagat") the

endless ("anantam") – Sri Maha Vishnu.

 

----

----

 

 

 

Question 4. (Kam archantah) praapnuyuh Maanavaah subham?

 

 

By worshipping ("archantah") whom can a man reach

auspiciousness (peace and prosperity)?

 

 

 

Answer 4. Tameva cha archayan nityam

Bhaktyaa purusham avyayam

 

Stuvan naama-sahasrena

Purushah satatthitah.

 

 

 

By meditating upon ("sthuvan naama"), by ("cha") worshipping

("archayan") and by prostrating at the same Purusha, man can reach

true Auspiciousness.

 

 

 

----

----

 

 

 

Question 5. Ko dharmah sarva-dharmaanaam

Bhavatah paramo matah?

 

 

 

What ("ko") is, in thy opinion, the Greatest Dharma?

 

 

 

Question 6. Kim japan muchyate jantuh

Janma-samsaara-bandhaaat?

 

 

 

By ("kim") doing japa of what can "creatures" (jantu) go beyond

("mutchyate") the bonds ("bandhanaath") of samsara?

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Answers 5&6.

 

Anaadi-nidhanam vishnum

Sarvaloka-maheshvaram

 

Lokaadhyaksham stuvan nityam

Sarva-duhkha-atigo bhavet.

 

 

 

Both questions are answered here: - the greatest Dharma is the one

Vishnu, who has neither a beginning (Aadi) nor an end (Nidhanam), the

supreme Lord ("maheshwaram") of the world. All creatures can go

beyond the bonds of samsar, "and he goes beyond all sorrows" who

daily ("nityam") chants ("stuvan") the sahasranaamas and within

glorifies "the knower of the world" (Lokaadhyaksha).

 

 

 

The supreme is described as that from which the whole world of names

and forms had risen in the beginning of the creation, that in which

the world continues to exit, that into which alone the world can

merge back during the `Dissolution' (Pralaya); this supreme is VISHNU.

 

 

 

After thus answering all questions, "His thousand Name", said

Bheeshma, "I shall now advise you. Please listen to them with all

attention". This is how the Sacred Hymn, called as "The thousand

names of Lord Vishnu", is introduced in the Mahaabhaarata.

 

 

 

---------------------END: Meanings

of the Dialogue---------------

 

 

 

Extra Comments: The Supreme cannot be defined and since He is the

very substratum of all qualities, He cannot be denominated by any

name, or indicated by any term, or defined in any language, or ever

expressed, even vaguely, in any literary form. He is beyond both

the "Known" and the "Unknown". He is the very illumining Principle of

Consciousness that illuminates all experiences.

 

 

 

And yet He has many manifestations and, therefore, He can have

infinite names in terms of His manifestations. Definitions should

directly describe the thing defined, and here we have a thousand

indirect definitions with which the Real, the Infinite is being

indicated in terms of the unreal and the finite. These "Thousand

names of the Lord" have been coined and given out by the Rishis. They

were collected and strung together into a joyous Hymn to Vishnu, a

garland of devotion and reverence, by the poet-seer Vyaasa.

 

 

 

Since each of them is thus an indicative definition of the unknown in

terms of the known, each term here is believed to rocket-us up into

the realms of the divine experience, only when we have lifted our

minds towards it through contemplation. Thus the Vishnu Sahasranaama

is employed not only by the devotees, in the sweet attitude

of `sporting with the Lord', but these are also employed by the

contemplative students of philosophy, as gliders to roam in the

realms of inspired Higher Consciousness.

 

----

----

 

More commentary: In the Kali-Santarana Upanishad, which is one of the

minor Upanishads, we find the great devotee Naarada approaching

Brahmaaji to enquire what is the way out for man to evolve in these

hard days of extrovertedness, which is quite natural and unavoidable

in the Iron-age (Kaliyuga)."Repetition of the names of Naaraayana is

sufficient enough", was the reply given.

 

 

 

It is to be carefully noted here that in the sixth question the

enquiry was how can `creatures' realise the Highest. Jantu

means `that which is born' (Janana-dharman). So all living creatures

are fit for this easy path. `Creatures' could even include the animal

kingdom as it is described in the Puraanas in their own poetic

language. In the Trikutaachala lake, the elephant that was caught by

the crocodile is described as having been saved by the Lord (Gajendra

Moksha). The story of Jadabharata is yet another example.

 

Sankara in his commentary describes here Japa as comprehensive of all

the three types. (A) That which can be heard by others; (B) That

which is heard by ourselves; © That which is mental.

 

Vishnu Sahasranaama can be employed in performing Japa of all these

three kinds.

 

 

 

In the following "Thousand Names", we meet with, though rarely, some

repetitions. Exactly 90 names have been repeated in this Great Hymn;

and of them, 74 are repeated twice, 14 are repeated thrice, and again

2 of them are found to have been repeated four times. Sometimes, the

terms are repeated as such Vishnu- Vishnu, Siva-Siva etc. and

sometimes different words with the same meaning are also employed

(Sreepati- Maadhava; Pushkaraaksha- Kamalaaksha). These need not be

considered as a defect, since this Hymn is a chant of His Glory .In a

chant of glory (stuti) repetitions are acceptable-it is but a style

of the emotional heart to repeat its declarations of love.

 

 

 

There are exactly 1,031 single "Names" of the Lord in the 1000-Name-

Chant (Sahasranaama). The extra 31 Names are to be considered each as

an adjective qualifying (Viseshana) the immediately following noun.

When one makes Archanaa to the Lord the correct dative case is to be

used. There are 20 double-names in the first 500 Names and 11 double-

names in the second half of the chant. There is one indeclinable

(Avyaya) word used, and it (896th) should be used in the dative for

Archanaa as Sanaat Namah; so too the 929th Name in the chant, being a

plural noun, should be used in Archanaa as Sadbhyo Namah.

 

 

 

It will also be found, as we study the significances of these Divine

names, that Vyaasa has employed sometimes masculine gender, on other

occasions feminine gender and some other times even neuter gender.

Wherever it is masculine. , it denotes Vishnu, the Lord of Lakshmi.

and when it is feminine it is indicative of His Might. Glory or power

(devataa) that is manifest everywhere, and when the term is in neuter

gender, it means Pure Brahman, the infinite Reality.

 

 

 

This Archanaa is generally performed by devotees daily; if this is

not convenient they perform this worship at least on their own birth-

days, on eclipse days and on the day on which the Sun moves from one

zodiac to another (the Samkraanti-day). This performance has been

prescribed by the Sastra for warding off troubles arising from the

position of planets, anger of the rulers, incurable diseases and

ruthless enemies. The highest effect is for purifying the mind and

thus gaining more and more inner-poise for the Saadhaka in meditation.

 

 

 

----

----

 

 

 

INSTALLATION OF THE LORD

 

 

 

All ritualisms start in Hinduism with a beautiful function-the

installation of the Lord in the devotee's own physical form. This is

technically called as Anga-Nyaasa and Kara-Nyaasa. The "Installation

in the Limbs", and the "Installation in the Palm". This is a method

by which the seeker with wilful thoughts and deliberate physical

signs sanctifies himself to be a Divine Temple and installs various

sacred deities in himself.

 

 

 

This helps the student to realise that though he is worshipping the

Lord as a Goal (or an Ideal) other than himself (bheda or anya), in

fact, he is to seek his identity with no traces of differentiation

(Abheda or Ananya), between himself and the Lord. The final

realization is a perfect identity indicated in the Mahaavaakya. "I am

Brahman". (Aham Brahmaasmi).

 

 

 

Neither in the Northern texts nor in the original Mahaabhaarata do we

find this `subjective installation ceremony' (Anga-Nyaasa)

prescribed. However, pundits of ritualism in the South employ the

Anga-Nyaasa; and it being such a beautiful act, so very helpful to

the seekers, we give here below the most popular one practised widely

in the South.

 

 

 

This "Installation Ceremony" declares to the devotees that the

enchanting form of Vishnu is to be ultimately realised as One

Infinite Reality without names or forms-in which the recognition of

even the distinction of the meditator-meditated- meditation is to

cease. Beside this deep significance, even though it be only for the

time being, the student is also given a sense of purity and sanctity

in himself. Just as a devotee feels highly inspired in the divine

atmosphere of a sacred temple, so too, after the Anga-Nyaasa, however

shattered we might have been, before we entered the Pooja-room, we

can artificially work ourselves up into a divine mood of peace and

purity.

 

 

 

The body itself is rendered as the temple of the Lord, wherein the

various limbs become the altars upon which, with a heart of love and

faith, the devotee invokes and installs various deities. In this

process, in order to bring the full blast of the sacred suggestions

to him, the repetition of each of these mantras is emphasised by a

corresponding physical sign. The idea is only, as we have already

explained, to establish the correct mood for devoted contemplation.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

A. asya Vishnu-sahasranaama-stotrasya veda-vyaasa Rishih

 

 

 

For this sacred chant, the "Thousand Names of Lord Vishnu", Sri Veda

Vyaasa is the divine Rishi.

 

Great mantras of deep spiritual significance and sublime Vedic

dignity are not mere poetic compositions by mortal fallible

intellects. When a. mastermind through meditation transcends the

lower levels of his personality and soars into the higher mental

altitudes, through his contemplation, there he `receives'

certain `revelations' that are faithfully repeated by them to the

world. Such `heard' statements (Srutam) alone have the power to stand

against the onslaught of the intellect, the ravages of time, the

forces of criticism etc.

 

 

 

Such statements when contemplated upon by lesser seekers, they too,

in the spiritual cadence of these mantras, get unconsciously uplifted

into realms unknown, and there they come to live a world of

experiences unfrequented by the ordinary multitudes. The `author of

the mantra' is thus termed in our Vedas as the `Seer' (Mantra-

Drashtaa). Such Rishis themselves admit that they did not

manufacture, compose or create the mantra, but they had a revelation

or vision (Darsanam) of the mantra.

 

 

 

The Mantra- Drashtaa, the Rishi, is the guru of the seeker, who is

seeking his path with the help of that particular mantra. The Rishi

of a mantra is installed at the roof of the head and the seeker, in

his seat of Vishnu-Sahasranaama-chanting,

 

 

 

Symbolism: ... chants this mantra in his mind, and, with his right-

hand thumb, middle-finger and ring-finger touches the top of his

head.

 

 

B. Anushtup Chandah

 

 

 

The metre ("chandah") in which the revealed mantra comes to the

teacher is also mentioned because it orders the discipline that

should be followed while chanting the mantra. Anushtup is the name of

the particular metre in which this thousand-name- chant on Vishnu is

sung. The chant is to come out through the mouth, and therefore,

the `altar of the metre' can be only the mouth.

 

 

 

Symbolism: The fingers that were touching the roof of the head now

come down to touch the lips, when the mantra `B' is repeated in the

mind by the seeker.

 

 

C. Sri Vishvaroopo Mahaavishnur-Devataa

 

 

 

Lord Vishnu of the form of the entire universe of variegated names

and forms (Vishva-roopah) is the deity of the mantra. Vishnu is the

theme of the chant. The Lord of Vaikuntha is the altar at which the

devotee is preparing to offer himself in humble dedication and utter

surrender.

 

 

 

Symbolism: Since Lord Vishnu is, to the devotee, the Lord of his

heart, the very centre of his personality, while chanting mentally

the mantra 'C' the student, installs the Lord in his heart, bringing

the fingers from the lips down to touch his bosom.

 

 

 

 

 

 

D. Devakee-nandanah srashteti Saktih

 

 

 

Every deity is a manifestation of the mighty Omnipotency of the

Supreme. The creator and sustainer (Srashtaa) of Dharma, the son of

Devaki (Devakeenandana), is the manifested power ("shaktih") of the

Almighty.

 

 

 

Symbolism: This creative power of righteous-ness and peace is

installed at the navel (naabhi) point, and, therefore, the fingers

come down from the heart region to the navel.

 

 

E. Sankha-bhrit nandakee chakree iti Keelakam

 

 

 

The mighty Creative Power invoked and established on the navel region

cannot be as such conceived by the mind. Therefore, to `nail' it down

(Keelakam) and establish it in our comprehension, this mantra

conceives ("udbavah") the Power as the Lord, who bears the Conch

("shanka"), the Sword, named Nandaka, and the Discus ("chakra"). This

is only to show how the total cosmic Power, expressed in terms of our

present understanding as creation, sustenance, and destruction, is

but a manifestation of the Lord. The conch (Sankha) represents

the `call' of the Reality, the Lord's own declarations stated in the

scriptures. Nandaka, the sword that punishes to bring joy (Nandana)

into the community and the destruction, without which evolution is

impossible, is represented by the concept of the Discus (Chakra).

 

 

 

Here it is also to be noted that the blowing or the conch represents

speech; wielding the sword represents action and the discus that

takes off from Him at His will, represents his thoughts. Thus this

great Power installed at the navel expresses itself in the world

through speech, action and thought.

 

 

 

Symbolism: To conceive fully this form is to hold firmly the Lord's

own feet, and, therefore, when this mantra is mentally chanted, the

fingers move away from the navel, and with both hands the seeker

touches his own feet.

 

 

 

Here it is to be carefully noted how:

 

the Guru is kept at the roof of the head,

 

the Veda (metre) in the mouth,

 

the Lord in the heart,

 

the Power in the navel and, thereby, the seeker himself becomes so

sacred that he prostrates unto himself by holding his own feet.

 

 

F. Saarnga-dhanvaa-gadaa-dhara iti Astram

 

 

 

Whenever there is a large wealth in a box it becomes a treasure and

it is locked and safely protected; when this divine installation has

taken place, and therefore, the body has become the Temple of the

Almighty, and therefore, it has become a scared treasure house to be

protected. But the seeker himself has no power to protect, and so, he

invokes the very weapon (Astra) of Vishnu, the protector of the

world, to stand by for the defence of the sanctified bosom. Saarga is

the name of the Bow (Dhanus) of Vishnu and the Mace (Gadaa) is

another of his weapons. These two form the artillery of defence;

which are manned by the Lord himself.

 

 

 

Symbolism: At this moment when this mantra is mentally chanted, it is

significant that the student lifts the palm away from the feet, and

with the stretched out index and middle fingers of the right palm

snaps them on the open left palm.

 

 

G. Rathaangapaanir-akshobhya iti Netram

 

 

 

Lord Vishnu as Lord Krishna played the part of the charioteer and

gained the name "Rein-handed" (Ratha-anga-paani). A charioteer has to

guide every step of every horse in order that the chariot be safe,

and the travel be pleasant. Of the sense organs, the eyes ("netram")

are the most powerful and once they are well guided, all others also

follow their heels. When Lord Vishnu, the charioteer, Himself is

installed in the eyes ("netram"), the individual is safe

("rakshobya") in his spiritual pilgrimage.

 

 

 

Symbolism: Therefore, invoking the Divine Driver, with reins in his

hand (Rathaangapaani), He is installed in the pair of eyes, and at

the moment of mentally chanting this, both the eyes are touched by

the tip of the fingers.

 

 

H. Trisaamaa saamagah saameti Kavacham

 

 

 

He (Tri-Saamaa) who is glorified by all the three ("tri") types, of

Saama songs (Deva-Vrata-Prokta), He who is the very theme that is

glorified by the Saama songs (Saamagah), He whose glory itself is the

manifested Sama Veda (Saama), He is none other than the Supreme This

great Lord is installed a, an armour ("kavacham") to wear for self-

protection.

 

 

 

Symbolism: While chanting this in the mind the seeker first touches

with the tip of his finger, of each arm, the same shoulders, and

afterwards crosses the arm, in front of him making fingers of each

palm touch the other shoulder-as if he is actually wrapping himself

and wearing the divine armour.

 

 

I. Anandam brahmeti Yonih

 

 

 

The Supreme ("para") Brahman, the Infinite Bliss ("anandam") is

("eti") the very womb (Yonih) from which the universe has emerged

out. The procreated world of endless variety has only one Eternal

Father, and this source is immaculate Bliss. When this is chanted the

seeker installs the Bliss Infinite at the very place of procreation

in himself. It is a spot in this great divine temple of the body,

wherein is the one source, from which the world has emerged out,

manifesting itself as the power of procreation (Taittireeya).

 

 

 

 

J. Visvaroopa iti Dhyaanam

 

 

 

The entire band of experience gained through the instruments of the

body, mind and intellect in terms of perceptions, emotions and

thoughts together is indicated by the term Visva. He, who has

manifested to be the total world of experiences (Visva), must

therefore be Visvaroopah. The cosmic form of the Lord (Visvaroopa) is

the total universe. Thus to meditate (Dhyaanam) upon Him as the whole

universe, is a method of installing Him in our intellect.

 

 

 

Symbolism: At this moment the student locks his fingers and sits in

meditation.

 

 

 

K. Ritam sundarasnah kaala iti Dikbandhah

 

 

 

Truth (Ritam), the lord, and his weapon, the discus, called

Sudarsana, and his annihilating power, Time (Kaala)-these three are

the mighty forces that guard this scared temple of life in the seeker

at the outer frontier of his world of influence (Dik-Bandhah). To be

truthful and ever to seek the great Reality (Ritam), to discriminate

and see the play of the Lord in all situations (Su-Darsanam), and to

control the very instrument of the time (Kaala), which is intellect

in the seeker, is to guard the frontiers of one's spiritual world,

against the hoards of inimical forces.

 

 

 

Symbolism: At this moment the student snaps his middle finger with

the help of his thumb and runs his palm around his head.

 

 

 

 

L. Sree-mahaa-vishnu-preetyarthe jape Viniyogah

 

 

 

Having thus installed through sankalpa the Lord in himself and having

come under the protecting wings of the mighty lord, here is the

declaration how he is going to employ himself in it. He is going to

engage himself (Viniyoga) in japa (jape) of the "Thousand Names of

Lord" ("sahasra-naama"). Now the question is: with what motive should

be undertake this chanting? The answer is in the very statement that

it is only for the grace (Preetyarthe) of Sree Maha Vishnu.

 

 

 

Symbolism: After chanting this declaration in the mind, the saadhaka,

takes a spoon of water (Teertham) in his right palm and pours it on

the floor in front of him.

 

 

 

A true seeker is not desire-ridden for material satisfaction, and,

therefore, he can have only one intention-the grace of lord, which

will manifest in him as contemplative power.

 

 

 

These twelve `slogans' are chanted for invoking and installing these

refreshing and spiritually benign ideas on the limbs of the devotee

himself. At this juncture this makes him inspired sufficiently for

higher meditation upon the truth as indicated and directed by the

thousand terms in Sahasranaama.

 

 

 

This beautiful subjective ritual is known as `Installation on the

limbs' (Anga-nyaasa). Not only that the student temporarily discovers

a new surge of inspiration, but even beginners feel highly relieved,

at least temporarily, from the load of his senses of `sins'. When

this is properly performed with a right attitude and devotion, the

student gains identification (saaroopya) with the Lord of his heart,

at the outer levels of his personality.

 

 

 

----

--

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

THE MEDITATION STANZA

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

saantaakaaram bhujaga-sayanam

padmanaabham suresam

 

 

 

"We meditate ("vande") upon the master ("naatham") of the universe

("sarva-lokaika"), lord Vishnu, who is ever peaceful ("shaanta-

aakaaram"), who lies on the great serpent-bed ("bhujaga-shayanam"),

from whose navel ("nabhi") springs the lotus ("padma") of the

creative power, who is the controller ("eesham") of the gods ("sura").

 

 

 

visvaadhaaram gagana-sadrisam

megha-varnam subha-angam

 

 

 

.... whose form ("aakaaram") is the entire universe ("vishwa"), and

who is the foundation ("aadhaaram") for the universe. who is all

pervading ("sadrusham") as the sky("gagana"), of the hue ("varnam")

of the cloud ("megha"), of fascinating beauty ("shuba-angam"),

 

 

 

Laksmikantam Kamalanayanam

 

Yogibhir-dhyaana-gamyam

 

 

 

.... the lord ("kaantam") of Laksmi, the lotus ("kamala") eyed

("nayanam"), he who dwells in the hearts ("bhir") of the yogis and

who can be approached ("gamyam") and perceived through meditation

("dhyaana"),

 

 

 

vande vishnum bhava-bhaya-haram

sarva-lokaika-naatham.

 

 

 

We pray to ("vande") to Lord Vishnu, he who is the destroyer

("haram") of the fear ("bhaya") of samsara ("bhava") and the Lord of

all ("sarva") the worlds ("loka").

 

 

 

This is the meditation upon the form of the lord, visualising Him

thus in His, all-Comprehensive nature, and meditating upon Him, the

seeker starts the vishnu-sahasranaama chanting.

 

 

 

 

 

 

(Approximate meanings:

 

Whose body is of the dark ("shyamam") like the clouds ("megha").

 

He lives ("vaasam") in the pure ocean of milk ("peeta-kousheya").

 

He has Lakshmi ("sri") in his chest ("vatsangam"). )

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

["shanka" = conch, "chakram" = discus; "kireeta" = crown; "kundalam"

= ear-rings,

 

"peeta" = yellow, "vastram" = clothes; "saraseeruha-ekshanam" = lotus-

like eyes;

 

"sahaara" = wide; "vakshasthala" = chest; "kaustubha" = gem stone;

 

"namaami" = i pray; "sirasaa" = bow down with my head; "chatur-

bhujam" = to the four-handed one;

 

"chandra-aananam" = moon-faced; "baahum" = hands ]

 

 

 

----

----

----

 

Stanza 1

 

Om visvam vishnur- vashatkaaro

bhoota-bhavya-bhavat-prabhuh

bhoota-krit bhoota-bhith bhaavo

bhootaatmaa bhoota-bhaavanah

 

 

 

 

(1) Visvam - He whose manifestation is the whole universe of forms:

the Viraat-Purusha. The cause is always present in the effects and as

such That Form from which the whole universe has emerged out can only

be its own manifestation. The whole cosmos of gross forms is His own

expression, and therefore, He is called as Viraatpurusha. `Sa eva

Sarva- Bhootaatmaa Visvaroopo Yato-Avyayah'. The Sanskrit term Visvam

comes from the root Vis, to enter: Thus it means He who has created

and entered into the entire universe, as the All-Pervading Reality.

It can also mean, That into which the entire universe has entered to

remain therein established. In the Upanishads also we have assertions

of similar ideas. It is only when intellectually, we view the Lord

that we come to recognise Him as the `cause' for the universe. When

viewed through contemplation, since the effect is nothing other than

the cause, there can be no world other than Him. In fact, there is

nothing other than the Supreme. In the Mandukya Upanishad we

read `Omkaara Evedam Sarvam'. In Geeta `OM ltyekaaksharam Brahma'.

 

 

 

(2) Vishnuh -The term Vishnu is dissolved as Veveshti Vyaapnoti iti

Vishnuh-That which pervades everywhere is Vishnu. That which has the

nature of pervasiveness is Vishnu. He is the one who pervades all and

nothing ever pervades Him. `Eesaavaasyam Idam Sarvam'-All this is

indwelt, pervaded by the Lord. This very same idea is described in

the typical style of the Puranas, in the incarnation of the Lord as

Vaamana, the short-boy (Vamana), who, with His three feet, measured

the entire universe. Because of this act, the Lord got the name

Vishnu, says Mahaabhaarata. Vishnu Purana (3-1) says: The root Vis

means `to enter'. The entire world of things and beings is pervaded

by Him and the Upanishad emphatically insists in its mantra `whatever

that is there is the world of change'. Hence it means that He is not

limited by space (Desa), time (Kaala) or substance (Vastu).

 

 

 

(3) Vashatkaarah - ln the ritualistic portion of the Vedas we find

many mantras ending with `vashat' and they are used in pouring

devoted and dedicated oblations. Thus the term Vashatkaara means: He

who is invoked, and for propitiating whom, the oblations are poured

in Vedic ritualism, using mantras ending with vashat.

 

Also Vashatkaara can mean yajna in its association and thus the term

in its suggestion can signify `He who is of the form of the Yajna'.

In the Upanishads also we find this meaning endorsed when the

Upanishad mantra says: "Yajno vai Vishnuh" - Yajna itself is Vishnu.

 

 

 

(4) Bhoota-bhavya-bhavat-prabhuh - He who is the Lord (Prabhu) of

the Past (Bhooita), the Future (Bhavya) and the Present (Bhavat).

Time is the concept of the intellect; it expresses itself in the

interval between experiences. Experiences are registered as thoughts

and thoughts are ever changing. This very change is known and

experienced by us. The knower of the change must be something other

than the change. Thus, He who is the Illuminator of all changes,

meaning the Consciousness (Aatman) is the Lord Vishnu. He is the One

who is not conditioned by time.

 

 

 

(5) Bhoota-krit -The Creator (Krit) of all creatures (Bhoota). This

word can be dissolved in two ways:

 

(a) One who creates the creatures (Bhootaani Karoti iti Bhoota- Krit)

or

 

(b) One who annihilates all creatures (Bhootaani Krindati iti Bhoota-

krit).

 

In both these cases, Brahman, the Supreme is the One Reality that

seems to function as the Creator, Sustainer or Destroyer, when He

functions through different gunas in the Total-Mind. Functioning

through a preponderance in Rajoguna, He becomes the `Creator';

through Sattvaguna the `Sustainer', and through Tamoguna, He Himself

expresses as the `Destroyer'.

 

 

 

Extra comments: Subjectively, the Atman functioning through my own

mind and intellect is I, the individuality. My personality entirely

depends upon the quality and texture of my own thoughts. I myself

become according to the moods of my mind the creator, sustainer and

annihilator of my world of experiences. He who manifests and

functions, in these three aspects, is the Supreme Vishnu.

 

 

 

(6) Bhoota-bhrit -One who nurtures ("brith") and nourishes all beings

(living creatures: "bhoota") in all their attitudes is this Great

Reality and, therefore, He is called as the Bhoota Bhrit. In Geeta

there is an elaborate description of this idea in the l5th Chapter

where the Lord points out how, He, as the light in the sun, fertility

in the earth, growth in the plants, nourishment in food, heat in

fire, -becomes Himself the `eater', and, therefore, how He Himself

presides over all the functions of the body and mind, and apparently

nurtures and nourishes the creatures, who are in fact nothing other

than Himself.

 

 

 

(7) Bhaavah -One who `becomes' (Bhavati iti Bhaavah) Himself into the

movable and the Immovable beings and things in the world. He is the

Pure Existence in all the sentient organisms and the insentient

objects in the universe. Hence He is indicated by the term Bhaavah.

 

 

 

(8) Bhootaatmaa -He is the Aatman (soul) of all the beings

("bhoota"): The very `Be' in the living beings. Just as the same

universal space manifests in all rooms as the room-space, so the

Infinite Life manifesting through any given vehicle is called the

Aatman of the vehicle. It is well known that space everywhere is one

and the same; so too, the One Reality sports as though different

Aatmans. This One Universal Soul is called in Vedanta the Supreme

Brahman (Para-Brahman) .In Bhaagavata, the Lord is addressed as "You

are the One Self in all living creatures ever illumining all their

experiences.'' In Kathopanishad: "The One enchanting Truth that

revels in every form manifesting in plurality".

 

(9) Bhoota-bhaavanah -One who creates and multiplies the creatures;

meaning the One, who is the cause for the birth and who is

responsible for the growth of all living creatures.

 

 

 

Stanza 2

 

pootaatmaa paramaatmaa cha

muktaanaam paramaa gatih

avyayah purushah saakshee

kshetrajno akshara eva cha.

 

 

 

 

10) Poota-atmaa -One with an extremely Pure (Pootam) Essence; One who

is not affected the least by the impurities of Maayaa. The Self is

beyond all vaasanaas and, therefore, He cannot be affected by anyone

of the manifestations of Maayaa such as thoughts of the intellect,

emotions of the mind or the perceptions of the body. Immaculate is

ever the Self, and so He is termed as the Pure Self (Poota-Aatmaa).

 

 

 

(11) Parama-atmaa -The Supreme, meaning that which transcends all

limitations and imperfections of matter: in short, the Transcendental

Reality. The Spirit is other than matter, and that in its presence,

the vestures of matter, borrowing their dynamism from Him, play their

parts rhythmically at all times. This has been the assertion found

chorusly repeated in all the Upanishads and in the entire Vedantic

literature. Sankara in Aatma Bodha points out that the Self is other

than the three bodies and that He functions in the microcosm as a

king in the nation. It was also said therein that matter borrows its

energy from the Spirit and continues its activity "as the world from

the Sun".

 

Kathopanishad and the Geeta guide us from the outer levels of our

personality, stage by stage, into the inner-most sanctum, and there,

the teachers declare, is He the Infinite, transcending all, reigning

in His own glory. "In short, that which remains other than the cause

and effect-Maayaa and matter-is He, the Parama Aatman. In Vishnu

Purana this Supreme is glorified as Maha Vishnu (Paramaatmaa)"-Vishnu

Purana 6.4.10...

 

 

 

(12) Muktaanaam paramaa gatih -He who is the final Goal ("parama

gathi"), that is reached by all the liberated souls ("mukta"). The

limitations and bondages lived through by man are in fact the destiny

of the matter vestures. Through delusion of non-understanding, we

identify with them and come to suffer the consequent sense of

imperfections. To liberate ourselves from the thraldom of matter is

to realize the Self. Hence the Truth is defined as the Supreme Goal

of the emancipated.

 

This `Goal' to be attained is called as `Gati' in Sanskrit, "The

Supreme Goal" (Paramaa Gatih) would necessarily be then that Goal,

having reached which, there is no return:

 

"There where having gone, men never return, That sacred place is My

seat"-Geeta Ch. 15. St. 6. In Geeta. (Ch. 8. St. 6)

 

even more explicitly the same idea has been asserted by Sri Krishna

when He says:

 

"O Son of Kunti, having reached Me, there shall be no more any re-

birth".

 

Again, He defines the final Goal as "That having reached no return

again" – Geeta Ch. 15, st.4.

 

 

 

(13) Avyaah –"Vyaya" means destruction; destruction cannot be without

change; therefore, that which is "without destruction" (Avyayah) is

the changeless. The Indestructible, and therefore, changeless, can

never have any modifications (Parinaama). For, modification is but

the death of a previous condition and the birth of a new condition.

The Eternal and the Immutable (Avyayah) is the Supreme Sat-chit-

aananda, and every other thing and being come under the hammer or

change. The medium in which all these changes are sustained is

Brahman, the Immutable. The Upanishads glorify Him as "Ajaro Amaro

Avyayah"-without old age, death or change.

 

 

 

(14) Purushah -One who dwells in the Fort-city (Puri sete iti

Purushah). Herein metaphorically the Rishis conceive our body as a

fortress with nine gate-ways-"Nava Dvaarc Pure Dehee"-(Geeta Ch. 5,

St. 13) -and declare the One who rules within it, like a king, is the

Self.

 

This term can also be dissolved in two more different ways giving

more and more suggestions to the nature of the Self. Thus, Purusha

can mean "That which was before all creatures" -Puraa Aaseet iti

Purushah or it can be

 

"One who completes and fulfils the Existence everywhere", meaning,

without whom Existence is impossible (Poorayati iti Purushah).

 

This Aatman remains in the bodies of living creatures as their

individuality (Jeeva) and in all the activities, physical, mental and

intellectual, Aatman is not in fact involved but He is therein only

an observer of all that is happening. This will become clear in the

following discussion.

 

 

 

(15) Saakshee -Witness. In every day life he is a witness who without

any mental reservation or personal interest observes and watches what

is happening in a given field of experience. "Saakshaad Drashtari

Saakshee syaad-Amarakosa. "The `Knower' in every bosom is the same

Supreme Self", says Lord Krishna (Geeta Ch. 13, St. 3). Though thus

Consciousness illumines everything, It is only a Witness, as It knows

no change. Just as the sun illumines every thing in the world and yet

the Sun is not affected by the condition of the things it is

illumining, so too Vishnu, the Supreme, illumines all, without Itself

undergoing any change.

 

 

 

According to Paanini Sutras the word Saakshee is derived from "Sa

+akshi", meaning "direct perceiver".

 

 

 

(16) Kshetrajnah -One who knows the body and all the experiences from

within the body, is the Knower-of-the- field, Kshetrajnah. As

Brahmapurana would put it: Bodies are `fields' and the Atman

illumines them all without an effort, and therefore, is called Knower-

of-the-field, Kshetrajnah".

 

 

 

(17) Aksharah -lndestructible: things which are finite are

necessarily conditioned by time and space; the Infinite is

unconditioned, and so It is Aksharah. Since It is Indestructible, It

cannot come under the methods of universal destruction arising from

nature or through the wilful actions of man. "It cannot be cleaved by

instruments of destruction, nor can fire burn It, nor water drench

It, nor air dry It"-(Geeta Ch. 2, St. 23). It is also indicated that

the Supreme Brahman is the Akshara-"Aksharam Brahma Paramam" -(Geeta

Ch. 8, St. 3).

 

Please note that in the stanza there is the extra word `only' (Eva)

used, indicating that Kshetrajnah is the Aksharah; there is no

difference between them both: the "Knower-of-the-field" and

the "field".

 

 

 

Stanza 3

 

yogoh yoga-vidaam netaa

pradhaana-purushesvarah

naarasimha- vapuh

sreemaan kesavah purushottamah.

 

 

(18) Yogah -The one who is to be known or realized through yoga. By

withdrawing the sense organs from their objects of preoccupation,

when the mind of the seeker becomes quietened, he is lifted to a

higher plane-of-consciousness, wherein he attains "yoga", meaning

wherein he realizes the Reality. At such moments of equanimity and

mental quiet "yoga" is gained: Samatvam yoga uchyate- (Geeta Ch. 2,

St. 48).

 

Since He is experienced through Yoga He is known as Yogah.

 

 

 

(19) Yoga-vidaam netaa –One who guides ("neta") all the activities of

all men `who knows yoga' (Yogaviti) .To all men of realization, He

who is the Ideal, is the Supreme Lord. Just as our activities are

today ordered by our selfishness and individuality, the Ideal that

commands and orders all activities in the bosom of a Man of

Realization is his God-Consciousness. This realm of experience is

Mahaa Vishnu. In the Geeta also we find the same idea expressed, in

the language of emotion, when the Lord says: "Those who contemplate

upon Me with total dedication, their daily welfare and spiritual

progress I shall bear".

 

 

 

(20) Pradhaana-purusha-eesvarah -Lord of both Pradhaana and Parusha.

 

The term Pradhaana means `maayaa'-the total cause for the entire

universe of forms.

 

The term Purusha indicates the individuality in each one of us-the

Jeeva.

 

Lord Eesvara means the Master (Eeshte iti Eesvarah).

 

The Lord of Maayaa and Jeeva means the one who makes both these

possible to exist and function. The One Infinite Reality which Itself

manifests as Maayaa, Jeeva and Eesvara is the Essence in Vishnu.

 

 

 

(21) Naarasimha-vapuh -One whose form ("vapuh") is half human

("nara") and half lion ("simha").This is the famous fourth

incarnation of Lord Vishnu which He took in order to destroy the

atheistic tyrant Hiranyakasipu and bless his devotee, Prahlaada.

 

 

 

(22) Sreemaan -One who is always with ("maan") Sree. Mother Sree is

Mother Lakshmi. In the Puranic terminology Lakshmi stands for all

powers, all faculties. The total manifested power potential in the

Omnipotent is Lakshmi. These powers are ever in Him and therefore, He

is the Sreemaan.

 

 

 

(23) Keshavah -He who has beautiful and graceful (Va) locks of hair

(Kesa) is familiar as in Lord Krishna's form. Or, it can also mean,

one who destroyed ("vah") the demon Kesin who was sent to destroy the

child-Krishna by his uncle Kamsa This interpretation is endorsed by

the Vishnu Purana, 5.16.23.

 

 

 

(24) Purushottamah -The constitution of the individuality, Jeeva,

when analysed, we find that it is made up of both the perishable-

matter and the Imperishable-Spirit. The Spirit expressing through

matter is the individuality, Jeeva. Reflected moon is the moon of the

heavens dancing on the surface of water. Just as the moon is

something different from its reflections and the water surfaces, so

too the Self is, in its transcendental nature, something different

from both matter, the perishable, and Spirit, the Imperishable, ever

playing in matter. This Transcendental Truth is indicated by the term

the Supreme Purusha (Purusha-uttama).

 

 

 

Stanza 4

 

sarvas-sharvas-sivah sthaanur

bhootaadir nidhir-avyayah

sambhavo bhaavano bhartaa

prabhavah prabhur-eesvarah.

 

 

(25) Sarvah -He who is the all. He being the One cause from which

have sprung forth all things and beings. He himself is the all. In

Mahabharata Udyoga Parva (70-12) we read: "As He is the origin and

end of all, whether existent or otherwise, and as He, at all times,

cognises all, He is called "Sarva". All waves rise from the same

ocean and, therefore, the ocean is the very essence in all waves.

 

 

 

(26) Sharvah - The Auspicious One: meaning, the One who gives

auspiciousness to those who hear of Him, to those who have a vision

of Him, and to those who meditate upon Him.

 

 

 

(27) Sivah -The One who is Eternally Pure. In Him can never be any

contamination of the imperfection of Rajas and Tamas. `Non-

apprehension of Reality' is Tamas and `misapprehensions of Reality'

constitute the Rajas. In the Reality Itself there can be neither of

them `He is Brahman; He is Siva', so the Upanishad declares of the

Absolute Oneness, which is Vishnu.

 

 

 

(28) Sthaanuh: -Generally this term Sthaanuh is used for the

permanent pillars that mark the frontiers of a country. They are

permanent, immovable, fixed. The Truth, that remains thus firm and

motionless, without movement, permanently established in Its own

Realm of Purity, is called by the term Sthaanuh-the Pillar. "Eternal,

All-Pervading, the Pillar, Motionless (is) this Ancient One," so says

Geeta Ch. 2, 24.

 

 

 

(29) Bhootaadih - The very cause ("aadi") for the five great

elements: Space, Air, Fire, Water and Earth.

 

 

 

(30) Avyayah Nidhih -The Imperishable treasure. The term Nidhi

means `that in which precious things are stored away or preserved

secretly': (Nidheeyate Asmin iti Nidhih). Therefore, He who is the

substratum-container-for the entire universe is the Nidhi. During the

dissolution (sleep) the One into Whom all things go to lie merged

therein temporarily, till the next projection or creation (waking),

as this Immutable Treasure Chest-the Vishnu. Here `unchangeable'

(Avyaya) is qualifying `Nidhi'.

 

 

 

(31) Sambhavah -One who takes up by his own free will various

incarnations for the glory of the world is Sambhavah. In fact, He

alone is the source of all that is created. In Harivamsa we read the

assertion: "I am the Narayana, the Source from which all creatures

and things spring forth". To uphold Dharma I shall manifest again

and again, declares the Lord in His Geeta:

 

 

 

(32) Bhaavanah -To do Bhaavana is to give: One who gives everything

to His devotees is Bhaavanah. The Lord is One who gives both joy and

sorrow to each one according to his deserts. In the case of humanity

it is He again who destroys the evil and blesses the good.

 

 

 

(33) Bhartaa -The One who `Governs' the entire living world.

Governing includes protecting the world from all harms and serving it

positively with progress and joy. One who does these to all creatures

at all times is Vishnu-the great Bhartaa.

 

 

 

(34) Prabhavah - The One who is the very womb of all the Five Great

Elements. It is That from which even the very concepts of time and

space have sprung from.

 

 

 

(35) Prabhuh -The Almighty Lord. He who is the All-Powerful. He who

has the supreme freedom to do (Kartum), not to do (Akartum), or to do

quite differently from what He had already done (Anyathaa Kartum) is

considered as the Prabhuh.

 

 

 

(36) Eesvarah -One who has the ability to do anything without the

help of other beings or things is called Eesvara.

 

 

 

Stanza 5

 

svayambhooh sambhur aadityah pushkaraaksho mahaasvanah

anaadi-nidhano dhaataa vidhaataa dhaaturuttamah.

 

 

(37) Svayambhooh -The one who manifests Himself from Himself is

considered as self-made. Everything born or produced must have a

cause. The Supreme is the cause from which all effects arise, and

Itself has no cause. This un- caused Cause-of-all, this Ultimate

Cause, with reference to which every thing else is considered

as `effects' is in itself the Absolute Cause. This idea is indicated

by the term Self-made (Svayambhooh).

 

 

 

(38) Shambhuh -He who brings Auspiciousness- both inner goodness and

outer prosperity to His devotees. Sambhuh is one of the famous names

of Lord Siva. By using this term in invoking Vishnu, by its

suggestion, it declares that Vishnu and Siva are not two Divine

Entities, but they are both manifestations of the One Essential

Reality.

 

 

 

(39) Aadityah-The Truth (Purusha) that glows with a golden splendour

in the solar system is called Aadityah. There are twelve Aadityas and

of them One is called Vishnu.

 

Krishna Himself declares, `I am Vishnu among the Aadityas' -

Aadityaanaam Aham Vishnuh- (Geeta Ch. 10, St. 21).

 

The word Aaditya can mean `Son of Aditi'-signifying the one who was

born as the son of Aditi in His Vaamana incarnation.

 

The term Aadityah can also mean in Sanskrit `One who is like the

sun'. The Sun is the one who illumines all, and every living creature

draws its nurture and nourishment directly or indirectly always from

the sun alone. In the same way Brahman is the one Sun in the universe

of living creatures illumining all experiences of all creatures.

 

 

 

(40) Pushkaraakshah -One who has eyes ("akshah") like the lotus

("pushkara"). Joy and Peace in the bosom of an individual are

expressed in the world outside at no other point so vividly as in the

eyes. The One, whose inner peace and joy, beaming out through His

eyes, bring into the devoted hearts all the aesthetic beauty and

romantic thrills of seeing a lotus dancing in the breeze, In short,

the term indicates the Lord who with His beautiful looks, magically

lifts all the sorrows in the devotee's heart and fills it with Peace,

Joy and Perfection.

 

 

 

(41) Mahaasvanah- One who possesses thundering ("mahaa") voice of

compulsion: "Svana" means `sound'. One whose `call' is thundered in

all hearts, familiarly known as the `compelling whisper' of the

Higher.

 

Or, Svanam can also mean `breath'; and so, the term can mean, `He

whose great breath is the very Vedas'. "Thus, O Maitreyee, this has

been breathed forth from this great Being what we have as Rigveda.

Yajurveda" -Brihadaaranyaka Upanishad (4.4.10). In the Spiritual

literature of India we often read Vedas described as His breath; He

breathed out the Vedas (Nih-svasitam).

 

 

 

(42) Anaadi-nidhanah –One who has neither ("an") birth (Aadi) nor

death (Nidhanum). Thus One who is changeless is Anaadi-Nidhanam; for,

any change should include the death of an old condition and the birth

of newer condition. To the Immortal and the Immutable, change is

impossible.

 

 

 

(43) Dhaataa- One who is the Substratum for the world of names and

forms. And who supports all fields of experiences in all. He who is

the screen for the cinema of empirical experiences' (Visvam).

 

 

 

(44) Vidhaataa -The One who is the Dispenser of all `fruits-of-

actions'. In the Karma-kaanda portion of the Vedas, Eesvara is

described as the Dispenser of fruit (Karma- phala-daataa Eesvarah).

He is the Lord who is behind this universe of scientific truths and

rhythm. He is the One who has not only ordered the laws of the

nature, but he is the one afraid of whom, the phenomena dare not

disobey his laws anywhere at any time. The light of the sun, the

heart is the fire, the sweetness in the sugar, the pains in the sin

and the joy s in goodness, are all their `nature' and none dare ever

disobey these laws. The one who is thus the unquestionable law behind

the entire universe of laws is Vidhaata.

 

 

 

(45) Dhaatur-uttamah –the fundamentals ("dhaatu") that form the

reinforcement on any existent thing are called Dhaatu. In science of

life, as explored by the Rishis, all corporal forms have risen form

and exist as composed of some definite `elemental factor' called the

Dhaatus. Of the end less varieties of Dhaatus available in existence,

the subtlest Dhaatu, without which no existence, is ever possible, is

the chit Dhaatu, and this is the Dhaatu-ruttamah.

 

Though very rarely, we do find some commentators splitting this word

into two as Dhaatu and uttama. But in the majority of the cases we

find it taken to form one term and explained as `the subtlest of the

Dhaatus'.

 

 

 

Stanza 6

 

aprameyo hrisheekesah padmanaabho-a- maraprabhuh

visvakarmaa manustvashtaa sthavishthah sthaviro dhruvah.

 

 

(46) Aprameyah – He, who cannot be defined and explained in terms of

any logical term of reference with other things should necessarily be

inexpressible. A thing that can be directly perceived (Pratyaksha)

can be desired, certain other things, which we may not directly

perceive, but can be infer (anumaama) them from data available. And

there are yet things which can be brought home to the listener by

describing them in terms of similar other objects (Upamaa). Since the

infinite has no `Properties'. It cannot be perceived, nor can It

be "understood through inference." Nor even explained in terms of

similar or dissimilar things." Hence the supreme Reality, Vishnu, is

called as Aprameyah. We can experience him only by ending all sense

of separativeness and becoming one with Him.

 

 

 

(47) Hrisheekesah –In the Puranic literature the meaning of the term

is `close-cropped' or `One who has coiled up his locks of hair'

(Hrissheeka+Eesa).

 

 

 

The term `Hrisheeka' is an absolute one now, and it means the "sense

organs". The Aatman, the self as Consciousness is the one who gives

light to all sense organs and, therefore, it is the lord of all sense

organs. This lord is Vishnu.

 

 

 

The obsolete word Hrisheeka also means the `rays' or that which gives

the joy'. Thus the term Hrisheekas can mean "the Lord of the rays":

the sun and moon. This way interpreted, commentators point out that

the term Hrisheekesah means He who has Himself becomes the Sun and

the Moon.

 

 

 

In His manifestation as the Sun and the Moon, the Lord Himself whips

the world to wakeful activities and sends the world to sleep and

rest. Thus Hrisheekesa in its deeper significance, is, to all

contemplative hearts, the Lord, who becomes Himself the world,

exhausts Himself in His activities, and ultimately packs His toys and

goes to rest at the time of dissolution.

 

 

 

(48) Padmanaabhah – One from whose navel ("nabhi") springs the Lotus

("padma"), which is the seat of the four-faced Creator, Brahmaaji.

 

Lotus in Hinduism represents Truth or any of Its manifested powers.

The creative faculties in man flow from the navel area (center:

naabhi), and manifests as the `four-faced' inner equipment

(Antahkarana) constituted of the mind, intellect, Chit and ego.

 

In the Yoga-sastras, we find a lot of details regarding this concept.

According to them every "idea" springs from Him (Paraa), and then at

the navel area, each of them comes to be `perceived' (Pasyantee).

 

Thereafter they play in the bosom as thoughts (Madhayamaa), and at

last they are expressed (Vaikharee) in the outer fields-of –activity.

 

In this discussion-upon the evolutionary stages through which

every "idea" becomes an "action" – we gather a clearer insight into

the meaning of the symbolism of "the Creator seated on the lotus",

which springs forth from the navel of the Lord, the Supreme Vishnu.

 

 

 

(49) Amaraprabhuh -The Lord ("prabhu") of the Immortals ("a-mara"),

the Devas. The Denizens of the Heavens, including all the office

bearers therein (Dikpaalakas etc.) along with Indra, are

called `Devas', and they enjoy in their heavenly state a relative

immortality.

 

The devas live and continue functioning till the great dissolution-

the Sleep of the Creator. Compared with the short span of the

existence of man on this globe, the aeons through which the Devas

live can be considered as end- less or immortal.

 

One who serves them with His might, giving protection and security to

all creatures, is called, therefore, Amaraprabhuh.

 

 

 

(50) Visvakarmaa -The very creator-of the world-of-objects, of all

equipments-of-experiences, and of all experiences in all bosom-is

called the Visva-Karmaa. Herein the Infinite Lord is but a Witness of

all that is happening and though the experienced world is sustained

in Him, He is not involved in the imperfections or mortality, that

are happening all around at all times in the Visvam. "They are in Me,

I am not in them"-Geeta.

 

 

 

(51) Manuh -The term means One who has the ability to reflect upon

the Higher (Mananaseelah Manuh). Manu also means mantra and so, as

applied to the Lord, it can mean as the One who has manifested

Himself in the form of the Vedic mantras.

 

 

 

(52) Tvashtaa -One who makes gross things of huge dimensions into

minutest particles. At the time of the world's dissolution, the

entire gross-world folds back into its subtler elements until at last

pure objectless space alone comes to remain.

 

 

 

(53) Sthavishthah -lt is the superlative degree of gross (sthoola)

and thus `the Supremely gross' is the subtlest Reality. The

contradiction that it contains is itself its vigour and beauty. The

Infinite as the subtlest is All-Pervading in Its own nature. It is

this Maha- Vishnu who has Himself become the entire universe of gross

things and beings. Just as all waves are the ocean, the total world

of gross things is itself the form of Vishnu.

 

In His cosmic form, Narayana had manifested to Arjuna in he Geeta.

There the words of Arjuna's chant will clearly bring home to us that

the entire gross world is ever His own Divine form.

 

 

 

(54) Sthaviro Dhruvah -The Ancient (Sthavirah) and the Motionless or

firm (Dhruvah). He is called the `Ancient' because the very

first `unit of time' itself had risen from Him. He was the progenitor

of the very concept of Time in us. Therefore, `Time' cannot condition

Him. Thus He becomes the most Ancient. He is the `Firm Truth';

nothing that happens in the phenomenal world can affect Him at any

time.

 

 

 

Stanza 7

 

agraahyah saasvatah krishno lohitaakshah pratardanah

prabhootah trikakub-dhaama pavitram mangalam param.

 

 

(55) Agraahyah -That which cannot ("a") be perceived ("graahyah")

through the play of the sense organs; in short, that which is not

an `object' of perception, but which is the very `subject'-who is the

Perceiver in all that is perceived.

 

The `subject' can never become the `object', and hence Truth is

something that the sense organs cannot apprehend, as they do any

other sense-objects. He is the one `subject' ever-perceiving all

objects, through all sense-organs of all living creatures,

everywhere, at all times.

 

The Lord is the `subject', not only in the sense organs, but He is

the "feeler" in the mind and the "thinker" in the intellect.

 

And thus the sense organs cannot perceive It, nor the mind feel It,

nor the intellect apprehend It; says the Upanishad, "That from which

words retire unapproached along with the mind" is the Supreme. Hence

He is Agraahya-Imperceptible and Incomprehensible.

 

Kenopanishad is very clear and emphatic: "That which the eyes cannot

perceive, but because of which eyes are perceiving, understand That

to be Brahman (Maha Vishnu) and not that which you here worship."

 

 

 

(56) Saasvatah -That which remains at all times the same is the

Permanent, That which is permanent, should remain Changeless in all

the three periods of time. In short, He is unconditioned by time. The

Supreme Consciousness Itself is the very Illumminator of Time, and

the Illuminator can never be affected by what It illumines. This

changeless reality is Vishnu.

 

 

 

(57) Krishnah -The word Krishna means in Sanskrit `the dark'. The

Truth that is intellectually appreciated, but spiritually not

apprehended, is considered as `veiled behind some darkness'.

 

 

 

The root Krish means Existence (Sattaa) and na means Bliss (Aananda).

So says Vyasa in Mahabharata, Udyoga Parva 70, 5. Therefore Krishna

(Krish+na) means Existence- Bliss (Sattaa-Aananda). Thus, the very

name divine, `Krishna', represents the Supreme Paramaatman.

 

 

 

Or, because of His dark-blue complexion He is called as Krishna.

Mahabharata Santi Parva 343 says, "As My colour is dark-blue, I am

called Krishna, O Arjuna."

 

 

 

In Mahabharata, we find Krishna explaining Himself to Arjuna `when

the earth becomes shelled in by its hard crux I shall turn myself

into an iron plough-share and shall plough the earth.

 

 

 

Apart from the above meaning Krishna also means the Enchanter of all

His devotees (Aakarshana). Truth is One which irresistibly attracts

everybody towards Itself. Commentators have interpreted this

significance in a more attractive context. They conclude that Krishna

means One who sweeps away the sins in the heart of those who meditate

upon Him.

 

Truth has got a magnetism to attract to Itself all the ego and ego-

centric passions of the individual. In this sense viewed, we need not

consider Krishna as a deity of the farmyard in the agricultural

estates. The Lord ploughs the hard stupidities in us and prepares the

heart-field, weeding out all the poisonous growths of sin, and

cultivates therein-pure Bliss which is of the nature of Reality.

 

 

 

(58) Lohitaakshah -Red-eyed. Very often we find descriptions in the

Puranas, where the Lord is explained as having eyes like the red-

lotus (Hibiscus). Generally the ruddy eyes represent anger and the

incarnations are taken for the purpose of destroying the evil and so

His anger is towards the evil-minded materialists who live ignoring

the higher values of life.

 

 

 

(59) Pra-tarda-nah - The root Tarda means "destruction" and with the

prefix Pro the root (Pra-tarda) means "supreme destruction". One who

does this total destruction (Pratardanah) is the Lord in the form of

Rudra at the time of the great dissolution (Pralaya).

 

 

 

(60) Prabhootah -The term means `born full' or `ever-full'. He is

ever-full and perfect in His Essential Nature, as the Transcendental

Reality, or even when He manifests in the form of His various

incarnations. Especially in His chief and glorious incarnation as

Lord Krishna, He proved Himself to be ever full with His Omnipotency

and Omnisciency.

 

 

 

(61) Tri-kakub-dhaama -One who is the very foundation or support

(Dhaama) of the three ("tri") quarters (Kakubh). We find this is

generally commented upon and described as "all quarters, in the three

realms above, below and middle." Viewing this from the platform of

Vedanta, He must be considered by us as the three Planes-of -

Consciousness-the waking (Jaagrat), the dream (Svapna) and the deep-

sleep (Sushupti) conditions. The fourth Plane-of-Consciousness

(Tureeya) is the Substratum for all the other three planes.

 

 

 

(62) Pavitram –One who gives purity to the heart. To the seekers who

are meditating upon Him, He gives inner purity, and hence He is known

as Pavitram.

 

 

 

Or, the term Pavi means; the weapon vajra (thunderbolt). One who

saves ("tram") his devotees from the thunderbolt of lndra is

Pavitram. This can also be interpreted as the "giridhara" episode

where the lord saves his devotees from Indra's wrath.

 

 

 

The thunderbolt is described as an instrument made out of the bone of

sage Dadheechi. Indra is the Lord of the lndriyas. In Vedanta Indra

signifies the mind. Mind's cross purposes, confusions, intellectual

compromises and the consequent self- cancellation of our mental

powers (Sankalpa-Vikalpa) can be the great thunderbolt of the mind

with which Indra (mind) can destroy in no time all the acquired tapas

of the saadhaka. Deep devotion, ardent meditation and firm faith in

the Lord Vishnu save the saadhaka from all such mental storms and,

therefore, the Lord acquires the significant name Pavitram

 

 

 

(63) Param Mangalam -Mangalam is that which not only removes the dark

pains of evil, but brings the bright joys of merit. Param Mangalam is

Supreme Mangalam, and It can be none other than He, by whose mere

remembrance all inauspiciousness gets lifted up and all

Auspiciousness comes to flood our hearts The Upanishad declares. "May

That Brahman-who removes all inauspiciousness in man and gives man

all auspiciousness, by a mere remembrance of Him -give us all

auspiciousness.

 

 

 

Stanza 8

 

eesaanah praanadah praano jyeshthah sreshthah prajaapatih

hiranya-garbho bhoo-garbho maodharo madhu-soodanah.

 

 

(64) Eesaanah –"The Controller of all the five Great Elements". When

this term is used, Eesvara becomes the Administrator of His own Law

in the phenomenal world of plurality. The executive function of His

Infinite Will, when manifested through Him, the Lord. Eesvara, is

said to function as Eesaanah. Or, the term can also mean One who is

the Supreme Eesvara-the Paramesvara.

 

 

 

(65) Praanadah -One who gives (Dadaati) the Praanas to all. The term

Praanas used in philosophy indicated "all manifestations of Life in a

living body". The Source of Life from which all dynamic activities in

the living organisms of the world flow out, meaning, That from which

all activities emerge out is Praanadah.

 

Taittireeya Upanishad (2- 7) exclaims: "Who could then live. who

could breath" if He be not every- where."

 

 

 

(66) Praanah -That which sustains is Praana and that which has got

Praana functioning in it is called a Praanee. Since the Lord is

termed as this very same Praana, it means by its suggestion that He

is One who ever lives. The Immortal and the Eternal is Praanah.

 

 

 

The term can also mean that which gives Life-impulse even to the air;

the capacity to sustain life in the atmosphere flows from Him alone.

 

 

 

In the Kenopanishad we read the Supreme `Defined' as the "Praana of

Praanas" (Praanasya Praanah).

 

 

 

(67) Jyeshthah -Older than all. The Infinite is That which was even

before the very concept of space (Aakaasa) came into existence. The

term is the superlative degree of the Aged. In short, the import of

this term is the same as the more familiar term used in our sastras,

the Ancient (Sanaatanah).

 

(68) Sreshthah -The most Glorious One: Here again it is the

superlative degree of glorious, Sreyah.

 

(69) Prajaapatih -The Lord (Pati) of all living creatures

(Prajaah) .The term Prajas means `Children'. Therefore Prajaapati

means the Great Father, to whom all beings in the living kingdom are

His own children, In this sense, the term connotes One, who, as the

Creator, creates all creatures.

 

(70) Hiranyagarbhah -One who dwells in the womb (garbha) of the world

(Hiranya). The Upanishad declares: "All these are in-dwelt by the

Lord." The "Golden Universe" is an idiom in Sanskrit where `gold'

means "objects of fulfilment and joy". One who dwells in them all is

Hiranyagarbhah. The term can also mean as He who, having become first

the Creator, has come to he considered as the womb of all objects.

 

(71) Bhoogarbhah -One who is the very womb of the world (Bhooh) The

One from whom the world has emerged out. In the Cosmic Form of the

Lord, this world occupies an insignificant though sacred portion,

just as the foetus in the womb, constantly and lovingly nurtured and

nourished by the very Essence in the mother. Or, Bhooh = the earth:

the divine consort of Hari: Garbha = Protector.

 

(72) Maadhavah -The Lord of Maayaa, Spouse of Mahaalakshmee. Or, the

term can signify the One who is ultimately experienced through a

diligent practice of "Madhu technique": the very famous Madhu Vidyaa

of the Chandogya Upanishad. The term Maadhavah can also mean One who

is the Silent (Mauni); who is ever the Non-interfering Observer, the

Silent Witness of the physical, mental and intellectual activities in

the realm of change. To put it in one word, He is the One whom the

seeker experiences when he has stilled his mind which has been

purified by Yoga practices.

 

(73) Madhusoodanah -One who destroyed the great demon Madhu. The

story of Vishnu destroying these two demons, Madhu and Kaitabha, is a

story of secret suggestions in Mahabharata. Madhu also means in Veda

(Madhu=honey) as the fruits of actions (Karma-phala). Actions leave

impressions and these sensuous Vaasanaas are destroyed by meditations

on the Reality and so the Supreme gathers to Itself the name

Madhusoodanah: "the Destroyer of Vaasanaas."

 

 

 

Stanza 9

 

eesvaro vikramee dhanvee medhaavee vikramah kramah

anuttamo duraadharshah kritajnah kritir-aatmavaan.

 

 

(74) Eesvarah -One who is Omnipotent, and so has all powers in Him to

the full. The manifested powers of Life express themselves in every

intelligent man as the power of action in the body (Kriyaa Sakti),

the power of desire in the mind (Icchaa Sakti) and the power of

knowledge in the intellect (Jnaana Sakti). All these three powers are

manifestations of Him, and since He is the One everywhere, He is the

total mighty power-the Great Vishnu.

 

(75) Vikramee -One full of prowess (Vikrama), courage, daring. Or, it

can be One who has "Special foot steps". This term commemorates how

the Lord, as Vamana, measured with His tiny three steps all the three

worlds.

 

(76) Dhanvee -Lord Vishnu's Divine Bow is called `Saarnga' and it is

described as the mightiest among the weapons. One who is having this

Mighty Bow at all times is Dhanvee. It can also remind us of His

incarnation as Sree Ramachandraji, when, in order to protect the

world from the mighty Raakshasas of Lanka, He had to dedicate a

substantial part of His life almost constantly wielding his bow:

hence Sri Rama came to be known as Dhanushpaani; in His attitude of

protection He is known as Kodandaraama. Thus, the term Dhanvee, the

Wielder of the bow, is quite appropriate for Vishnu. "I am Sri Rama

among the Wielders of the bow" –Geeta Ch.l0, St. 31.

 

(77) Medhaavee -Supremely intelligent; One who is capable of

understanding everything. One who has the capacity to comprehend

intellectually all that is happening around is called Medhaavee.

Since Consciousness is the One Light in all living creatures, which

illumines all intellects, and since Vishnu is this Infinite

Consciousness, He is the One Knower, knowing all things, at all

times, at once. Hence Sarasvati, the Goddess of Learning and

Knowledge is described as the very tongue of Vishnu.

 

(78) Vikramah -While describing the term Vikramee (75) we had already

explained the meaning contents of Vikrama, and thus Vikrama is an

appellation that had come to Vishnu as a result of His Supernatural

Act of measuring the universe with three steps.

 

Also, Vi means the "king-of-birds", the white-necked eagle; Krama

means steps and, therefore, `movement or travel'. In this sense

Vikrama can mean: "One who rides on the white- eagle (mind) is

Vishnu"-who is described as having Garuda for His vehicle (Vaahanam).

 

(79) Kramah -He who is All-Pervading is Kramah. Because of His All-

Pervasiveness, the Infinite is called as Vishnu. That which goes

beyond the frontiers of the known is the Supreme, and, therefore, in

the description of Him, who has manifested as the Cosmos, we have in

Purushasookta an indication that He not only pervades all that is

known but "extends even beyond by ten digits" (Atyatishthat

Dasaangulam).

 

(80) Anuttamah -One who is `incomparably Great' in glory-Anuttamah.

In the Sanskrit construction of the word, it means something more

than what we have said; it means: `He is one, beyond whom there

exists none who is greater than He (unexcelled). The Upanishad itself

describes Him: In Geeta (XI-43) we read: "For Thy equal exists not,

whence another superior to Thee?" In Sri Narayana Upanishad (12) we

again read, "There is nothing above or below, equal to Him".

 

(81) Duraadharshah -One who cannot be attacked, stormed or

beleaguered successfully. In short, He is All-Powerful. In the

Puranas, we find Daityas and Asuras and others, mighty and powerful

ones, become themselves helpless victims of His Power and come under

His sway. To one who has realized the Infinite, the lower nature of

the mind (Daityas) and the enchantments of the senses (Raakshasas) ,

are all helpless to overwhelm Him. "Rasopyasya Param Drishtvaa

Nivartate" -Geeta Ch. 2, St. 59.

 

(82) Kritajnah -He who knows all that is done by all: the One Knower

who knows all physical activities, all emotional feelings, and all

intellectual thoughts and motives. He illumines them all, in all, at

all times. Hence He is called Kritajna. Vishnu is the One who knows

clearly the exact depth of sincerity, the true ardency of devotion,

the real amount of purity in the bosom of all his devotees, and,

accordingly, brings joy and bliss to their hearts.

 

(83) Kritih -The One, who is the very dynamism behind all activities.

He is the Inevitability behind the result of actions. He is called

Kritih because it is He who visits to bless the good and to punish

the evil; in short; He is the One who rewards all our actions.

 

(84) Aatmavaan -One who is the Self in all beings. In the Chandogya

Upanishad (7.24.1) when the disciple asks, "Where does the Lord, the

Infinite, stand established?" the Sruti answers, "In Its own glory

established ever is the Self"-(Sve Mahimni Pratishthitah).

 

 

 

Stanza 10

 

suresah saranam sarma visva-retaah prajaa-bhavah

ahah samvatsaro vyaalah pratyayah sarvadarsanah.

 

 

(85) Suresah -The denizens of the Heavens are called in the Puranas

as Suras. Eesa means the Lord; Suresa, therefore, indicates the God

of gods, the Lord of the Suras. The gods are called as Suras because

they are capable of blessing their devotees with a fulfilment of

their desires. Therefore, Suresah means One who is the best among

those who fulfil all the demands of their devotees (Suras). In short,

He is the One who gives the Supreme State of Beatitude and the

consequent total liberation from all desires of the ego.

 

(86) Saranam -The Refuge for all who are suffering from the thraldom

of imperfection in life. According to the Sanskrit Lexicon

(Amarakosa), the term Saranam means `Protector' and also `home'.

Since the Lord is the Ultimate Goal, Saranam, He is also

the "Destination", the `Harbour'. The One Who realizes Him comes to

live in Him.

 

He is the home to which the prodigal son (jeeva) ultimately returns.

Not only for the men of Realization is He the Home, but for all

creatures, movables and immovables, He is the Home, to which they all

disappear to rest and to revive during Pralaya (Sleep).

 

(87) Sarma -One who is Himself the Infinite Bliss. Transcending the

mind lie the shores of Bliss, beyond the waters of agitations. The

Infinite is described in our Upanishads as the "Sacchidaananda", ever

of the same nature-"Saantam Sivam Sundaram".

 

(88) Visvaretaah -Retas means `seed'; the term connotes that He is

the seed from which the tree of life has sprung forth. He who is the

very cause for the entire play of experience in the world of

pluralistic objects (Sarva- Prapancha-Kaaranabhootah) is called

Visvaretaah.

 

(89) Prajaabhavah -He from whom all living creatures (Prajaa) spring

forth (Bhava) is known as Prajaabhavah.

 

(90) Ahah -Ahan has got two meanings: the 24-hour-day or the 12-hour

day-time. He is of the nature of `day-time' means "He is the One,

ever effulgent and bright"; as bright as the daylight that illumines

all objects around. In case we accept the other meaning, "the 24-hour-

day", then, a day being a unit of time, the term Ahan can also

mean, "One who is of the nature of Time itself". Also He is one who

does not (a) ever destroy (han) the devotees who have surrendered

themselves to Him.

 

(91) Samvatsarah -One who is of the nature of year-meaning One who is

the Lord of Time; He, from whom the very `concept of Time' rises.

 

(92) Vyaalah -One who is unapproachable. Vyaala also means `Serpent';

to those who have no devotion or understanding, God or Truth is as

horrible and terrible as a `serpent'. Moreover, it is so difficult to

grasp in our understanding that It is like a serpent: ever eluding,

always slippery.

 

(93) Pratyayah -One whose very nature is Knowledge. That the Supreme

is Knowledge Absolute is very well known. It is in the light of

Consciousness that all `know- ledges' are possible. `Knowledge of a

thing' is the Awareness of its nature. Awareness is Knowledge. Since

the Supreme is the One Awareness everywhere, all `Knowledges' spring

from the Self. Hence, He is called "the Pure

Knowledge". "Consciousness is Brahman" is one of the Mahaavaakyas.

 

(94) Sarvadarsanah -This term, "All-seeing" is very appropriate in as

much as the Supreme Consciousness has been defined and indicated in

the Kenopanishad as, "That which the eyes cannot see, but because of

which the eyes see". It is the Seer in the eyes, the Hearer in the

ears, the Speaker, the Feeler and the Thinker". And since this

Principle of Consciousness is One everywhere, as expressed through

the equipments, It is indeed the One Seer in all `seeing', by

everyone, everywhere. The Upanishad says: and the Geeta indicates

Him as "One who has eyes and heads everywhere".

 

 

 

Stanza 11

 

ajah sarvesvarah siddhah siddhih sarvaadir achyutah

vrishaakapir ameyaatmaa sarva-yoga- vinissritah.

 

 

(95) Ajah -Unborn. Birth implies a modification; birth cannot be

without the death of its previous condition. Since the Eternal and

the Infinite, is ever Changeless there can be in It neither birth nor

death. That which is born must necessarily die: -(Geeta Ch. 2, St.

27) and so, that which is unborn should be deathless (Amritah).

 

Rig Veda (1-81-5): "He was neither born nor is He going to be born."

 

(96) Sarvesvarah -God of all gods or the Supreme Controller of all.

In a sense it means the Almighty, the All-powerful. "He is the Lord

of all," says Brihad Upanishad (6-4-2).

 

(97) Siddhah -One who has achieved all that has to be achieved, as

He Himself is the Final Goal for all. Or the term can also mean "the

most famous".

 

(98) Siddhih -He who is available for recognition (Siddha) everywhere

at all points in His nature as Pure Consciousness. Again, Siddhi also

means the `fruit of action', and in the context here this would-

mean, "He who gives the Infinite fruit of Kaivalya, Moksha." All

other karmas can acquire for us only relative joys of the heavens,

but in realizing the Self the seeker gains an `Infinite State from

which there is no return', so describes Geeta.

 

(99) Sarvaadih -One who is the very beginning (Aadi) of all; one who

was in existence earlier than everything else. Even before effects

arise, the Cause. The Infinite which was before creation and from

which the created beings had emerged out, as an effect, is naturally

the Primary Cause (Moola-Kaarana).

 

(100) Achyutah -Chyutah= Fallen; Achy utah: One who has never fallen:

the Ever-Pure Reality which is never fallen into the misconceptions

of Samsar: the Pure Knowledge in which ignorance has never come to

pollute Its purity. Lord Himself says in Bhagavata, "I have never

ever before fallen from my Real Nature; therefore, I am Achyutah".

 

(101) Vrishaakapih -There is a lot of controversy among pundits upon

the exact meaning of this term. But all controversies become

meaningless when we read Bhagavan's own words, "Since Kapi has a

meaning the `boar', and since vrisha has the meaning of `Dharma' the

great Kasyapa Prajapati says I am Vrishaakapih".

 

In Sanskrit the term Kapi has a meaning: `that which saves one from

drowning'. Lord in the form of the Great Boar, (Varaaha) in that

incarnation, had lifted the world from the waters at the end of the

deluge; the term vrisha means `Dharma'. One who thus lifts the world

drowned in Adharma to the sunny fields of Dharma is vrishaakapih

 

(102) Ameyaatmaa -One who has His manifestations (Aatmaa) in Infinite

varieties, almost unaccountable (Ameya), The Viraat Purusha of the

Form of All-Lord of the Cosmic Form is suggested here. As all forms

have risen from Him, exist in Him, and dissolve into Him alone, all

forms are His own different forms.

 

(103) Sarva-yoga-vinissritah -Yoga is from Yuj `to join'; `to

attach', One who is totally free (vinissritah) from all contacts or

attachments. Attachment to a thing is possible only when the object-

of-attachment is other than the subject, In the One Infinite Reality

there cannot be any attachment with anything, mainly because there is

nothing here that is not the Infinite Itself. The Infinite is a Mass

of Love; there is no attachment in It; for, attachment is Love with

possessiveness and desire for gratification, "This Purusha is,

indeed, unattached", roars Brihad Upanishad (6-3-15), Lastly, the

term, Sarva- Yoga- Vinissritah can also mean that He is beyond the

reach of the various systems of Yogas taught in the Sastras. These

systems are to quieten the mind, to end the misapprehensions-of-

Truth, to annihilate the Maayaa, What is there left over in the

seeker's bosom is the Self-the Great Vishnu,

 

 

 

Stanza 12

 

vasur-vasumanaah satyah samaatmaa sammitah samah

amoghah pundareekaaksho vrishakarmaa vrishaakritih.

 

 

(104) Vasuh -The One who is the very support of all elements, and the

One who Himself is the very Essence of the elements, This is

something like the dream made up of our own mind; and the very same

dream-world plays itself out, all the time sustained in the very same

mind. Similarly, the Self indwells all and all dwell in the Self. In

the Geeta we are told by the Lord, "I am among the Vasus the

Paavakah"-(Geeta. Ch. 10, St. 23). Therefore, the Self exists like

air-allowing everything to remain in it and sustaining everything by

it.

 

(105) Vasumanaah -One who has a mind which is Supremely Pure; meaning

a mind that has none of the sins of passions and pains; none of the

storms of desires and jealousies; none of the quakes of likes and

dislikes.

 

(106) Satyah -He is the Real. The term Satyam used in philosophy has

a special connotation. That which remains the same in all the three

periods of time is called Satyam. That which seemingly exists, but

which never was nor shall ever be, is considered as a false delusion,

A-satya. He who remains the same, before the creation, during the

existence and even after the dissolution, is the Infinite Truth,

Satyah. The Taittireeya Upanishad thunders that the Eternal Truth

is "Truth, Knowledge, Bliss": "Satyam, Jnaanam, Anantam Brahma" -

Taittireeya Upanishad: 2-1.

 

We may here mention a couple of other meanings that are generally

given to this term "The best among good people is Satyam. Again, the

word Satyam is made up of three sounds -Sat-ti-yam -and, herein,

according to the Upanishad itself, "Sat means praana, ti means food,

Yam means sun;" therefore, Sat yam is the Law which orders the food

to sustain the praana when both are blessed by the sources of all

gross energies in the cosmos, the Sun.

 

(107) Samaatmaa -He wbo is equally in all. In Kathopanishad we read

the declaration of Lord Death to Nachiketas how the same Truth has

come to express itself differently from form to form. To visualize

the Paramesvara who revels equally ill all, among the perishables and

imperishables, is the Vision Divine. Kauseshika Upanishad (3-9)

says, "One should understand that the Self is the same-in-all". In

the Geeta also is the declaration "I am the Seer in all the fields-of-

experiences everywhere" -Geeta Ch. 13, St. 3).

 

(108) Sammitah -The term Sammatam means `acceptable'. The One. Truth,

which has been proved and accepted by the Rishis In the Upanishads

through subtle logic and philosophical reasoning, is called Sammatah.

This is the most direct and very appealing meaning. But there are

some who would interpret this portion of the Thousand Names of Lord

Vishnu by combining Samaatmaa (107) and Sammitah (108) to form

together a single `Name', wherein the compound word would read

Samaatma-asammitah. Here the term Asammitah then would come to

mean "One who is incomparable, Inimitable (Atulya) who has none to

equal Him".

 

(109) Samah -Equal; the same. Truth remains the same. One Infinite

Reality plays the game of plurality. As has been said in the

Kathopanishad, "The One Principle of Fire having entered this world

burns itself out differently according to the equipments upon which

it is manifested", so the One Truth manifests as the many Jeevas.

Hence He is called the Samah. Also it can mean as One who is ever

united, with (Sa) Lakshmi (Maa).

 

(110) Amoghah -Moghah means "useless fellow" (Nishphalah), "a

disappointing power". Amogha is the opposite of it: "Ever

Useful", "Ever the Fulfiller" of all the wishes and demands of His

devotees. Chandogya Upanishad (8-1-5) declares: "Truthful is His

wish, and Truth is His resolve".

 

(111) Pundareekaakshah -One who can be contacted and fully

experienced in the Heart Space (Pundareekam). In the Narayana

Upanishad (10) we find the same term employed: "In the core of the

body, in the Heart Space, dwells the Supreme." In the `Heart', the

meditator can experience the Reality more readily and very clearly,

and so the All- Pervading Reality is described as "dwelling in the

Heart-cave".

 

(112) Vrishakarmaa -Vrisha means Dharma. One whose every activity is

righteous and who acts only to establish righteousness. "For the sake

of establishing Dharma, I am born in every age", says Lord -(Geeta

Ch. 4, St. 8).

 

(113) Vrishaakritih -One who is of the form (Aakriti) of Dharma

(Vrisha). It is not only that His actions are righteous but He is

Himself Righteousness. It can also mean as One who takes different

forms during His Divine Incarnations-all for maintaining the Rule of

Dharma in the world.

 

 

 

Stanza 13

 

Rudro bahu-siraa babhrur visvayonis-suchi-sravaah-

amritah saasvatah-sthaanur- varaaroho mahaatapaah.

 

 

(114) Rudrah -One who makes all people weep, At the time of death or

during the total dissolution, the One who makes all weep is Rudrah.

>From a devotee's standpoint the same term is interpreted as the One

who liquidated all sorrows is Rudrah. Bhagavan declares Himself to

be "Among the Rudras, I am Sankara –(Geeta Ch. 10, St. 23). According

to the Vedic terminology there are 11 Rudras; this eleventh "Rudra"

is called as Sankara: Sam-karoti-iti = Sankarah - "One who blesses

all with Auspiciousness (Sam)."

 

(115) Bahusiraah -One who has many heads. The Purushasooktam of the

Rig Veda describes the Cosmic Form of the Lord with a narration, "The

Purusha of thousand heads, thousand eyes and thousand feet……." In

Geeta a similar description of the Universal Form of the Lord is

found in Chapter XI. Again in the Geeta Chapter XIII when the Lord

was describing the Infinite Goal to be known (Jneyam), He describes

It as "Everywhere legs, everywhere hands, every- where eyes,

everywhere His face".

 

Thus, He whose personal manifestations constitute the universe is

known as "One who has many heads."

 

(116) Babhruh -One who rules over the worlds. "Like a King" -

Atmabodham gives this analogy .He in whose presence all the

instruments of perception, feeling and knowing continue their

coordinated activity is the Self, the Atman, who is Great Lord

Vishnu.

 

(117) Visvayonih -One who is the Total Cause from which alone the

entire world of experiences (visvam) has emerged out. The womb (yoni)

from which thoughts and actions had risen is called Visvayonih.

 

(118) Suchisravaah -One who has beautiful and efficient ears

(Sravas): "Everywhere are His ears"-(Geeta Ch. 13, St. 13) meaning

thereby He is the Hearer in all ears. The term Sravas not only means

ears, but it also means "names" -so Suchisravas can mean `One who has

Divine and Sacred names'. Thus, the devotee can invoke Him with

thousands of His names when He can readily listen in and rightly

understand the exact purity and the real depth of devotion in the

devotee. Also the term can be used to indicate the One whose "names"

are worthy of being heard by seekers.

 

(119) Amritah -One who is Immortal and Immutable. Mritam = dead. The

Infinite is Ajarah, Amarah and Avyayah. It can also mean as One who

is of the nature of Nectar (Amritam) -a sure cure for those who are

suffering from malady of ignorance. Amritah also means Moksha; and

thus it is indicated, He is the ever-liberated-the Pure State of

Being.

 

(120) Saasvata-sthaanuh -One who is both permanent (Saasvatah) and

irremovable (Sthaanuh). He is the One who remains Changeless, because

Immortal; who remains the same in all periods of time, because

permanent (Saasvatah); and who remains changeless in His nature or

Consciousness (Sthaanuh). This is a single term (Saasvata-sthaanuh)

and, therefore, we must add the meanings together- Permanent and

Changeless; Permanently Changeless Factor in lire is Vishnu.

 

(121) Vararohah - He who is the most Glorious (Vara) Destination

(Aaroha). The Seat of the Self is the most Glorious because the

imperfections of the world-of-matter (Prakriti) are not there in the

Spirit (Purusha). Liberation from the thraldom of matter is the

arrival of the Infinitude of the Self. "He never returns", thunders

the Chandogya Upanishad (8-15-1) three times in one and the same

breath, assuring us that one who has reached the Seat of Vishnu,

beyond the frontiers of the intellect, there is for him no more any

return ever into the ego-centric life of tensions of sorrows.

 

(122) Mahaatapaah -One of great Tapas. The term tapas in Sanskrit has

three meanings: `Knowledge' (Jnaana), `Prosperity' (Aisvarya) and

also `Might' (Prataapa). It is in the presence of Consciousness that

we come to know all our experiences. `Conscious of' a thing or an

idea is the `Knowledge of' the thing or the idea. That about which I

am not conscious of, I have really no knowledge of it. All

knowledges, of all bosoms, in all living creatures, everywhere, at

all times, cannot be without the play of Consciousness upon the

respective objects of knowledge, and hence this Consciousness is

indicated in the Upanishads as Pure Knowledge, in the light of which

alone all knowledges are possible. All achievements and prosperity

(Aisvarya), all might and power of the living creatures can express

themselves through them only when they are alive. This great truth is

Maha Vishnu. "Whose Tapas is of the nature of Knowledge" (Mundaka-

Upanishad. 1-1-9).

 

 

 

Stanza 14

 

sarvagah sarvavid-bhaanuh- vishvak-sena janaardanah

veda vedavid-avyango vedaanga vedavit kavih.

 

 

(123) Sarvagah –"He who has gone everywhere", meaning "One who

pervades everything". The cause pervades its effect: gold in all

ornaments; ocean in all waves; cotton in all cloth. The Infinite

Consciousness Itself expresses as both world-of-matter (Kshetra) and

the Knower-of-the-field (Kshetrajna). Vishnu, the Infinite is beyond

these two (Uttamah Purushah) in whom there is no expression of matter

and, there- fore, no `Knower'-hood. He is the All-Pervading Self,

Maha Vishnu.

 

(124) Sarvavid-bhaanuh -One who is All- Knowing (Sarvavit) and

Effulgent (Bhaanuh) .The Light of Consciousness is the "Light that

illumines all lights" and it is again Consciousness that "illumines

even darkness" -Geeta Ch.13, St.17. In the Mundaka Upanishad (4.10)

also we read: "By its Light alone it illumines all other

experiences." Sarvavit-Bhaanuh is one term: meaning that all Knowing

Effulgent Consciousness.

 

(125) Vishvaksenah -He, while facing whom, even the mighty army of

the gods retreat and scatter away, is called as Vishvaksenah. He is

the Almighty and All-Powerful, and no army can stand against Him.

 

(126) Janaardanah -The term Ardayati is a verb meaning both `giving

sorrow' or `giving joy'. Thus, One who gives sorrow and disaster to

the vicious, and who blesses with joy and peace to the good people is

called Janaardanah.

 

(127) Vedah –The term Veda comes from the root vid: `to know'. Since

Veda gives knowledge, the Lord is termed as Vedah, in the sense, that

He is the One who gives the Knowledge of the Reality, because He is

the very Reality. In Mahabharata, Vyasa says: "Krishna alone is All-

vedas, All-sciences, All-techniques and All-dedicated Actions". In

the Bhagavad Geeta (Ch. 10, St.2) Lord says: "Out of mere compassion

for them, I, abiding in their Self, destroy the darkness born of

ignorance, by the luminous lamp of wisdom".

 

(128) Vedavit –`One who knows the veda'. The Lord alone is the One

Experience without which the Vedas cannot be fully realized. The

surest and the most exhaustive commentary of the Vedas is to be found

only in a stilled mind, which is in communion with Vishnu, the

Supreme Reality. Geeta (Ch. 15, St. 15) says, "I am the author of the

Vedanta, as well as the Knower of the Vedas."

 

(129) Avyangah -He who has no imperfections (Vyanga) anywhere in him-

The All-Perfect. The term Vyanga also means person, and so A vyanga

means One who cannot be known by anyone in any `personal-form'. Geeta

plainly says "This great Reality is Imperceptible, Unthinkable,

without any modifications". -Geeta. Ch. 2, St. 25

 

(130) Vedaangah –One whose very limbs are the vedas. In Kenopanishad

in the closing stanzas, the teacher insists that all knowledges are

Its limbs.

 

(131) Vedavit –`One who contemplates upon the Veda is Vedavit':

(Vedam Vichaarayati=Vedavit). Mere word meaning cannot give us the

true concept of the subtle theme discussed in the Vedas. Continuous

reflection upon their declarations alone can reach us to the peaks of

their imports. In the Geeta, Bhagavan Himself declares that He is not

only the very Revealer of Vedas but He is at once the Knower of the

Veda -Geeta Ch. 15, St. 15.

 

It is absolutely necessary that the student of the Vedas should try

to understand the meaning of their declaration. To repeat the mantras

parrot-like is not of any consequence: `He who has studied the Vedas

but has not understood the meaning, but carries a load, as the `road-

rest' on the roadside.' Thus He who constantly reflects upon the

Veda, and naturally lives up to it, is the Great Lord.

 

(132) Kavih -The term Kavi in the Vedas means the `Seer'. One who

experiences something more than the ordinary is called a Kavi. In the

Isavasyopanishad (8) we read: -"The Seer, the Intelligent...." In

the Brihadaranyaka Upanishad (5-7-23) we read: "There is no Seer

except Him."

 

In the Glory of the Lord, He confesses, in the Geeta, "among the

Poets, I am Usanas, Sukra-Aachaarya".

 

 

 

Stanza 15

 

lokaadhyakshah suraadhyaksho dharmaadhyakshah krita-akritah

chaturaatmaa chaturvyoohas-chatur-damshtras-chatur-bhujah.

 

 

(133) Lokaadhyakshah –One who presides over all fields of

experiences -all lokas. President is one who is responsible for the

conduct of the assembly; he guides the discussion in a disciplined

manner, and ultimately at the end of it all, he dissolves the

meeting. All through the discussions he never interferes with the

freedom of speech and action of the members, if they act within the

agenda of the day. Similarly, the Lord presides over all the fields

of activities, never interfering with the freedom of the individuals

to act. "The Supreme Purusha in this body is also called the

spectator, the permitter, the supporter, the enjoyer, the great Lord,

and the Supreme Self." From the Puranic standpoint the Lord in His

Vaamana manifestation was installed as the king of the three worlds

and, therefore, this name, say the Pauraanikas.

 

(134) Suraadhyakshah -The President of the Heavens to whom the Devas

run for protection when they are threatened by their constant

enemies -the Daityas and the Asuras. When in the Heaven of our bosom,

the thought-angels are threatened by the negative tendencies and

criminal purposes, He to whom the good in us surrender totally for

sure protection and safety is Vishnu, the President within the bosom.

 

(135) Dharmaadhyakshah -Presiding over the activities of the living

organisms, Consciousness revels, illumining both the good and the

evil therein. The One Sacred factor that constantly thus illumines

all the nature and functions (Dharma) of the body, mind and intellect

is the Dharmaa- dhyakshah, Lord Vishnu.

 

(136) Kritaakritah -Kritam = that which is done = that which is

manifested or created Akritam, therefore, is that which has not

manifested or become. The former (Kritam) indicates all the "effects"

manifested out of the Creator's activities, and the latter (Akritam)

is the "cause" from which no manifestation has yet emerged -it is

still unmanifest. The Self, the Atman, is the `Post' -in the ghost-in-

the-post example -upon which the cause and the effect, the unmanifest

and the manifest, like the "ghost" apparently come to play (Kritam =

Vyaktam, A-Kritam = A-Vyaktam).

 

(137) Chaturaatmaa -The Self is described as four-fold when we

consider the Atman as the Glory (Vibhooti) of the Self. Thus, the

Essential factors, with which alone the endless play of creation,

sustenance and destruction can continue, are the glories of the Self

(Aatma-Vibhooti). In Vishnu Purana, four distinct vibhooties of the

Lord -when He functions as the creator, sustainer and destroyer -are

found enumerated. From the standpoint of a Vedantic student, since in

the Non-dual Reality there cannot be anything other than It- self,

all the plays of the gross, the subtle and causal bodies, in the

microcosm and in the macrocosm, are the glories (vibhooties) of the

One Self. In the Absolute, in the Eternal, all these are transcended;

these- the water, dreamer, deep-sleeper, the Tureeya -are all Its

Glories. The Possessor of these Glories is the One that transcends

even "Tureeya"; He is called as the Tureeyaateetah.

 

(138) Chaturvyoohah -One who manifests into the four mighty powers

(Vyooha). The Truth, that plays thus Himself in these four levels

having apparently created the world of experiences, is Vishnu, the

All-Pervading. According to the Vaishnava literature, for the purpose

of creation, Maha Vishnu Himself became four mighty powers (Vyooha)

and they were called Vaasudeva, Samkarshana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha.

One who has Himself these four mighty powers, necessary for the

conduct of plurality, is the Great Self, Maha Vishnu.

 

(139) Chatur-Damshtrah -The canine teeth fully developed in the upper

and the lower rows, as in the case of carnivorous animals, are called

in Sanskrit as Damshtraa. This is reminiscent of the Powerful

Damshtraa of the Lord when He took the form of Nara-Simha to protect

Prahlaada.

 

Also in the Puranas we find that the Great white Elephant of Indra, "

Airaavata," has four tusks -He whose glory is the four-tusked

Airaavata is Maha- Vishnu. To the student of the Upanishad, it is

indeed very clear that these four `tusks' or `teeth' are nothing

other than the four paadas which Mandukya thunders -"Chatushpaada".

The manifestation of the Might and Glory of the Supreme are the play

of the waking, dream and deep-sleep conditions. With reference to

these three, transcending them all, is the fourth plane-of-

consciousness the Springboard for all these three. He, whose Glory

are all these four grinding, crushing, fearful experiences of

duality, is the One Non-dual Self, the Great Maha Vishnu.

 

(140) Chaturbhujah –"One who has four hands". It is famous that Maha

Vishnu has four hands and they carry the Conch, the Discus, the Mace,

and the Lotus. According to the Puranas, these four are used by the

Lord in maintaining Dharma among mankind. The `Conch' calls man to

the righteous path that directly leads to Peace and Perfection, the

Divine Vishnupada. Very many of us in the enchantment of the

immediate sense-joys refuse to listen to the small inner voice of

conscience, the sound of the Paanchajanya-conch, and so He wields

the `Mace' and we come to suffer small calamities and tragic jerks in

our smooth existence -communal, social or national. If still the

individual is not listening to the call of the `Conch', the wheel-of-

time, Chakra annihilates the entire. The call and the punishment are

all only to take man towards his Ultimate Goal, represented by

the "Lotus" in His hand.

 

Subjectively Vishnu is the Self within, who manifests as the four-

armed `subtle-body' to serve as the Eesa of the gross physical

structure, in all its actions and protect it with existence.

The "Subtle-body" as the inner-equipment (Antah-Karana) functions as

four mighty powers -mind, intellect, chit and ego. Chit is

the `Lotus', intellect is the `Conch', ego is the `Mace', and mind is

the `Discus'. All these four are wielded by the One Infinite Blue-

bodied Narayana, clothed in His `yellow garb', manifesting to

maintain and sustain the world of good and evil. Since the Self

functions thus in a four-fold pattern, Vishnu has the

appellation, "the four-armed Lord."

 

 

 

Stanza 16

 

bhraajishnur-bhojanam bhoktaa sahishnur- jagadaadijah

anagho vijayo jetaa visvayonih punarvasuh.

 

 

(141) Bhraajishnuh -Self-Effulgent Consciousness illumines

everything; and it is not borrowing Its Light from any other

source. "It is the Light of lights that illumines even darkness"-

(Geeta Ch. 13, St.18). And the Upanishad is equally vehement and

declares: "There the sun has no light nor the stars nor these

lightnings; how little then can this fire! By its Light alone all

these are illumined.

 

(142) Bhojanam -The immediate meaning of the term is food, viz.

eatables. In philosophy it has a wider implication and the

term "food" cannotes the entire field-of-objects experienced or

enjoyed by the sense-organs. The world-of-objects projected by the

sense-organs, the inner psychological play and this world-of-matter

constituting the field-of-plurality, all together is comprehended by

the term Maayaa. Thus cathodox commentators reduce this

term `Bhojanam' to the contents and functions of Maayaa. Taittireeya

Upanishad (2-7) says: "He is indeed the Essence (Rasa)".

 

(143) Bhoktaa -The "Experiencer" Not only the world-of-objects is

essentially nothing but the Spirit, Lord Vishnu, but even the very

instruments-of -experiences and their ultimate joys and sorrows, are

all illumined for us by the Lord- of-Lakshmi. The Pure Self,

expressing through the gross, the subtle and the causal bodies,

becomes the waker, dreamer and deep-sleeper, experiencing all

happenings, good and bad, as the individuality in that living person.

Consciousness, Purusha, identifying with and functioning through

matter (Prakriti), comes to experience the endless modifications that

are born out of Prakriti. The Self in Its Infinite nature is

actionless and yet in Maayaa seems to function and becomes the

Enjoyer or Sufferer of the actions of matter.

 

(144) Sahishnuh -One who is capable of patiently suffering, in his

perfect detachment, all that is happening around, is a sahishnuh.

Whatever happens to the reflections of the Sun, the Sun in the cosmos

is unaffected by them, and with reference to his reflections we can

call him a Sahishnuh, the Sun is a mere "witness" of his own endless

reflections.

 

The term has also got two more meanings in Sanskrit as `Forgiver'

or `Conqueror'. Vishnu is one who forgives us readily all our

trespasses, and conquers for us all the inimical forces in our inner

personality.

 

(145) Jagadaadijah -One who had born (Jah) in the very beginning

(aadi) of the world (jagat) is called Jagadaadijah. At the time of

dissolution (Pralaya) when the entire gross and subtle bodies go to

lie absorbed in the Total Causal-body, the world, in Pralaya, lies

merged in Eesvara. Before the gross world-of-plurality emerges out

there should be a condition of subtle manifestation of it in the form

of thoughts. Thoughts constitute the mind-intellect; when the

Infinite functions through this Total Mind-intellect, It is called as

Hiranyagarba the womb of all objects, it is from the Hiranya garba-

state, the manifestation of the gross world emerges out, when the

lord comes to play as a Virat Aatmaa. Maha Vishnu is the one who was

born before the world of gross bodies, therefore it is indicated here

that he is the "Womb-of all- objects" in the world, the Hiranyagarba-

the very creator.

 

(146) Anaghah -Agham means sin (Paapa), impurities (mala); and

therefore, Anaghah means One who has no imperfections and who is not

affected by the good and bad Vaasanaas left over in the personality

as a result of the wilful actions. He is the Uncontaminated

(Aliptah) .The Light of Consciousness is the Illuminator of the mind,

and so the peace of virtue or the agitations of the sin cannot affect

the Illuminator -the Illuminator being always different from the

illuminated. Chandogya Upanishad (8-1-5) says: "He is free from Sin".

 

(147) Vijayah –"The Victorious". One who realizes the Self can

thereafter stand apart from the thraldom of matter, Victorious over

the tyrannies of the flesh, feelings or facts. Thus, the Seat of Self

is the Seat of Victory over matter. The Peace and harmony of the Self

can never be assailed by the noisy hordes of the world of plurality.

Vijaya is the name also of Arjuna and the Lord Himself says, "Among

the Pandavas, I am Arjuna" - Geeta Ch. 10, St. 37.

 

(148) Jetaa –"Ever Successful". In all undertakings He alone wins;

One who never knows any defeat or failure. Upanishad says: "Truth

alone wins, never falsehood".

 

(149) Visvayonih -It can be interpreted in two ways as (a) He who is

the Cause of the universe or (b) He who has the world as His Cause.

The former is clear to those who have so far followed the commentary,

and to them the latter may be a very confusing statement. From the

standpoint of the Puranas, it is logical. The Self has manifested as

the various Incarnations from time to time because of the condition

of the world, and therefore, Visvam is the cause for His

manifestations.

 

(150) Punarvasuh -One who comes to live again and again in various

equipments of living organisms is Punarvasuh:

 

 

 

Stanza 17

 

upendro vaamanah praamsur-amoghah suchir-oorjitah

ateendrah samgrahah sargo dhritaatmaa niyamo yamah.

 

 

(151) Upendrah -The younger brother of Indra. In His Incarnation as

Vaamana, He was born to Aditi, who was the mother of Indra, and

hence, the Lord is known as the "Younger brother of Indra". In

Sanskrit the prefix upa denotes `Above' in the sense of `superior

to'; therefore, Upendra may also mean "One who is superior to Indra",

the king of gods. Such an explanation we find in the Harivamsa (76-

47).

 

Indra, the king of the sense-organs, is the mind and the

Consciousness, which is the Self, is the One factor that dynamises

the mind. Since life is that which controls even the mind, certainly

It is superior to the mind and this Self is the Maha Vishnu.

 

(152) Vaamanah -Of the ten great incarnations, the fifth one is

Vaamana; and the very name indicates `One who has a small body'. It

was in the form of a child (vatuh =A child student in a gurukula)

that Vaamana approached the divinely righteous Emperor Mahaabali to

beg of him a little land, of the length of his tiny three steps-and

the Lord measured in His three steps all the three worlds and thus

conquered Mahaabali. He checked (Vamayati) the rising pride of

possession in Bali, hence He, in that incarnation as a Vatu, is

called Vaamana.

 

The term Vaamana also means `worshipful': "Him, the Dwarf, sitting in

the middle of the heart, all gods adore", so we read in the

Kathopanishad (5-3). However, here the emphasis should be upon the

meaning "short statured" because of the contrast it makes with the

following name.

 

(153) Praamsuh -One whose body is vast is called Praamsuh. Vaamana,

when He got the promise from the righteous King, and when He started

measuring, the Lord took His Cosmic Form, and with each step measured

the earth, the interspace, and the heaven. In Harivamsa (262-263)

there is a beautiful description of the little Vaamana growing into

His Total Form. The rate of His expansion is described with reference

to two fixed factors the Sun and the Moon. When He took the form, the

Sun and the Moon were His eyes; as He measured the earth, they came

to His bosom; as He was measuring the space, the Sun was at His navel

and as He lifted His feet to measure the Heaven, the Sun and the Moon

were just below His knees.

 

(154) Amoghah -One whose activities are ever a fulfilment of some

great purpose. Even insignificant actions, which, ordinarily, people

would think are empty and purposeless, are never really so, when they

spring from Him. Even when He punishes, it is only for inaugurating a

greater evolutionary blessing.

 

(155) Suchih -One who is spotlessly `clean', and therefore, Ever-

Pure. Impurities in a substance are things other than itself; when

dust is on the cloth, the cloth is impure, unclean. Since the Self,

the Aatman, is the Non- Dual Reality, having nothing other than

Itself in It, Ever-pure alone must It always be. And Suchih is One

who gives this purity to those who contemplate upon Him constantly.

 

(156) Oorjitah -One who has infinite strength and vitality. Wherever,

in the organism, we meet with any strength and vitality they are all

the strength and vitality of the Self. The Infinite Vishnu is the One

All-Pervading Self, and therefore, He is the very springhead for all

strength.

 

(157) Ateendrah -One who is beyond Indra in knowledge, glory and

strength. Since Indra represents the `mind-intellect' equipment,

Aatman, the Self is denoted here as that which transcends the mind.

 

(158) Samgrahah -One who holds the entire world of beings-and-things

together in an indissoluble embrace unto Himself. Just as the hub of

a wheel holds the rim unto itself by its endless spokes, so too the

Aatman, the Self within, lends Its vitality to every cell in the body

and to every thought in the inner-equipments.

 

In none can anything happen which is not a glory borrowed from Him.

And, the Self, being the same everywhere, in all existence, in both

the movables and immovables, gross and subtle -in the manifest as

well as in the unmanifest - He certainly is the One who holds the

world of phenomena unto Himself in a vast embrace of Love and

Oneness.

 

(159) Sargah -One who has created out of Him- self the whole world.

It therefore must also connote One, who has the whole created world

as His own form, since the creation is His own manifestation as the

Subtle and the Gross.

 

(160) Dhritaatmaa -One who supports Himself by Himself. In the

previous epithet Samgrahah, He was shown as the Cohesion of Love in

the world of matter and energy, and in Sargah, He, as the One

material and efficient cause of creation, was shown as also the very

supporter of the manifested world. But who supports Him? He is

Dhritaatmaa - He is established in Himself.

 

(161) Niyamah -The Appointing Authority: It is He, who orders all the

mighty forces of nature and prescribes for each the Laws of their

conduct, the ways of their behaviour and the methods of their

functions. The Sun, Moon, Air, Waters, Dik-Paalakas, Death etc. are

all appointed and ordered by the Lord.

 

(162) Yamah -One who is the mighty Power that administers all the

forces of Nature under His Law. Everything in nature strictly obeys

ever all His Laws.

 

 

 

 

 

Stanza 18

 

vedyo vaidyah sadaa-yogee

veerahaa maadhavo madhuh

ati-indriyo mahaamaayo mahotsaaho mahaabalah.

 

 

(163) Vedyah -That which is to be known; in the language of the

Geeta, it is Jneyam. That final knowledge, knowing which every-thing

becomes known. "Kasmin nu bhagavo vijnaate sarvamidam vijnaatam

bhavati iti"-(Mundaka. 1-3).

 

All sciences are investigations into Truth After observing the nature

and behaviour of things and beings when the investigator moves ahead

seeking the ONE Harmonious Chord of Reality that holds all phenomena

in its inescapable love-web, the scientist of Truth-comes to reject

first the gross, and soon thereafter the subtle realms, and

ultimately even the causal factors, and thus-comes to apprehend this

harmony, which he is seeking as the very subjective core of his own

Self. This final Goal to be realized, "having known which everything

else becomes known," the One Consummate Knowledge to be gained

(Vedyah), is the Self, the Great Vishnu.

 

(164) Vaidyah -The One Supreme Doctor who alone can minister to the

world suffering from ego and egocentric misconceptions. One who is a

master of all knowledge (Vidyaa) is also termed as Vaidvah

 

(165) Sadaa Yogee -To the confused and the deluded to detach

themselves from the false vestures-of-matter and to seek their

identity with the ETERNAL Self is called Yoga. All attempts in

attaining an at-one-ment with the Self is called Yoga. The Goal, the

Self, therefore, in the language of the seeker must be Sadaayoga-ever-

in yoga.

 

(166) Veerahaa –"He who destroys the mighty heroes". The powerful men

of strength and valour when they grow in their audacity to become

tyrants, the Lord manifests to destroy such Raakshasas and thus

protects the Dharma and the Good.

 

(167) Maadhavah -Earlier this term was used (72) where we interpreted

the term as the "Lord of Lakshmi." Maa means not only "Lakshmi," but

she is also "Vidyaa" (Knowledge). The Lord (Dhava) of all Knowledge

(Maa) is Maadhava.

 

He who helps introspection and meditation in the seeker is

Maadhava. "To become conscious of the existence of a thing" is called

the knowledge of the thing, The Aatman, the Self is Existence (Sat)

and Consciousness (Sphurana) and, therefore, Lord Vishnu, the Self is

the source of all knowledge and as such the Master of all Vidyaas:

(Maa-dhava), Harivamsa saysO Hari, You are the Lord (Dhava) of

Knowledge (Maa), and hence You are called as Maadhava, the Master of

Maa."

 

(168) Madhuh -The term Madhuh familiarly stands for "honey". It is

also a term to indicate "nectar." One who generates Nectarine Bliss

in the hearts of His devotees is called Madhuh. The springtime in

India is called as Madhumaasa since spring is the season of flowers;

full of honey for the bees, and joy for man. The month called Madhu

(March- April) is the Chaitra month which is considered specially

auspicious for prayers, and meditation. One who is of the nature of

the Maadhava-maasa, the month of Maadhava (April-May) can also be the

suggestion in this term. Vaisaakha (April-May) is considered as the

most auspicious time of the year for the worship of Vishnu by all

Vaishnavites.

 

(169) Ateendriyah -One who is beyond the sense-organs not only in the

sense, that the sense-organs cannot perceive Him as their `object'

but also in the sense that He is other than the sense-organs and

their functions. Lending to them, all their very vitality, is His

mere presence! He is the very `subject' in the perceiver, and,

therefore, the instruments of perceptions, emotions, and thoughts

cannot experience Him: this Source of All-life is Maha Vishnu.

Kathopanishad (3-15) says: "He is soundless, untouched, formless,

immutable, so without taste, eternal, smell-less.

 

(170) Mahaamaayah -One who is the Supreme Master of all Maayaa. He is

the very Substratum upon which all the plurality spring up and play

their infinite enchantments, constantly basking in the Light of the

Supreme Consciousness. Aatman, the Self, is untouched by the play of

Maayaa, and yet the Maayaa-play is sustained only by the exuberant

warmth of His Divine presence. The Sun is the Master of all clouds,

inasmuch as, in its presence, borrowing its heat, water by its own

nature gets evaporated, and the water, vapour again, because of its

own nature of a lesser density than the atmospheric air, rises to the

higher altitudes and gathers there as clouds. It is, again, the

nature of the atmosphere that at higher altitudes it is cooler and

the water-vapour so cooled becomes water again, and due to the higher

density of water it descends as rain. In this example the Sun can be

called as the "Creator" of all clouds and the "Cause for the rams,"

and consequently the sun is also the " Master of the Seasons." And

yet, the Sun is uncontaminated by all these phenomena that are

happening in its presence.

 

In the same fashion the Infinite Reality, Vishnu, is indicated here

as the Great Magician, who has the magic of Maayaa at His command.

Krishna Himself confesses in the Geeta: "Very difficult indeed it is

to cross over My Maayaa" -(Geeta Ch. 7 St. 14).

 

(171) Mahotsaahah -The Great Enthusiast; the Ever-Dynamic

Accomplisher. The Powers of creation, of sustenance and of

annihilation-in their totality is the world of birth and death that

we live in. This wonderful world cannot be sustained without the

endless enthusiasm of this Mighty Power. Looking at the ocean,

through the waves, we come to recognise the ocean as the "Sleepless

Agitator"; similarly, looking at Vishnu, "through the ephimeral

kaleidoscopic changes in the patterns of life available to us in our

experience today, we call Him as the "Dynamic accomplisher"

(Mahotsaahah). The term employed here, the Enthusiastic Accomplisher,

is indeed one of the most appropriate names for Maha Vishnu.

 

(172) Mahaabalah -One who has Supreme Strength. He, being Omnipotent,

is the Source of all Strength that we see in each individual organism

in life. His Vitality reflected in each of us, is our individual

strength; naturally He is the Infinitely Strong, Mahaabalah.

 

 

 

Stanza 19

 

mahaabuddhir-mahaa- veeryo mahaa-saktir mahaa-dyutih

anirdesya-vapuh sreemaan ameyaatmaa mahaadri-dhrik.

 

 

(173) Mahaabuddhih-In the previous term, we were told He is

Omnipotent. Here He is indicated as Omniscient. The Supreme,

functioning through the intellect, is the intelligence. The quality

and quantity of the intelligence will depend upon the condition of

the "intellect' through which the Infinite comes to play. The

intelligence in a mathematician, poet or an artist, scientist or

politician-all are the different play-patterns of energies invoked

from the one Supreme Intelligence, and therefore, Mahavishnu, the

Self, is called here as Mahaabuddhih, the Reservoir of all

Intelligence.

 

(174) Mahaaveeryah -One who is the Supreme Essence. "Veerya" is the

Essence behind all the creative urges. Since the Divine is the very

source, from which alone the dynamism for creation can manifest, the

Supreme Divinity is termed here as the Mahaaveerya.

 

(175) Mahaasaktih -All-Powerful. Power here means efficiency. He-

whose manifestations are the power-of-action, the power-of-desire and

the power-of-knowledge saktees-must necessarily be the most powerful,

in as much as a play of these three powers is the total play of the

world.

 

(176) Mahaadyutih -Of Splendorous Light. Dyuti means `Glow', Sobhaa.

The Pure Consciousness is the illuminator of all, including all other

material sources of light in the world-Sun, Moon, stars, fire etc.-

but this is not all; He is also the One, who is Himself Self-

Effulgent. This is Mahavishnu-the Supreme Self. In the

Mundakopanishad (4-9) Lord is described as the "Light of lights".

Brihadaaranya- kopanishad (6-3-9) declares: "He is Self-effulgent".

 

(177) Anirdesyavapuh -One whose form is indefinable, indescribable,

inexplicable (Anirdesyam). Ordinary things can be defined, described

or explained because they come within our experience. Our objective

experiences can be satisfactorily expressed in words. Vishnu is that

Truth which is the Subjective Essence in all of us; He is

that `Knowledge', in the light of which, all other knowledges are

rendered possible. As such no "sources of knowledge" (Pramaanas such

as Direct perception, Inference etc.) can be employed successfully in

exploring the realm of the Self. Subjective experiences of `Be', the

Maha Vishnu, is possible; but It can never become an `idea' to

express, nor can It become an `emotion' to feel, nor can It ever

become an `object' to be described.

 

(178) Sreemaan -Sree means Glory (Aisvarya). Vishnu is permanently

wedded to Mother Glory; He, who is constantly courted by all glories,

is Sreemaan, Lord Vishnu.

 

(179) Ameyaatmaa -He whose Essence (Aatmaa) is inestimable and

immeasurable (Ameya). As Aatman (Kshetrajna) He, the One, expresses

Himself everywhere in every equipment (Kshetra), as the `knower' in

each `field'. Since these equipments are infinite in number, as the

individuality (jeeva) in each one of the created beings, His own

Glory expresses in endless manifestations.

 

(180) Mahaadridhrik -One who supports the great Mountain. In the

Puranas, we find two instances, wherein the Lord has been described

as the uplifter of or as having lifted and supported the mountains.

While churning the milky ocean with the Mandara mountain we are told

that the "churning-stick" sunk into the bottom and the Lord had to

manifest in the form of the Great Tortoise (Koorma) and support it,

while the Gods and Demons continued the churning, until they gathered

the nectar (Amritam).

 

Again, the Supreme, as Lord Krishna, in order to protect the cows had

to lift the Govardhana Mountain. Because of these two stories in the

Puranas, Lord, the Protector of the mind in Saadhanaa, is called as

Mahaadridhrik.

 

Vishnu is the Divine, that supports the mind-intellect of the

Saadhaka while he is churning, through study (sravana) and reflection

(manana), his own Milk-like pure heart-of devotion in order to gain

the experience of Immortality (Amritam).

 

 

 

Stanza 20

 

maheshvaaso maheebhartaa sreenivaasah sataam gatih

aniruddhah suraanando govindo govindaam-patih.

 

 

(181) Maheshvaasah -One who wears or wields the Great Bow called

Saarnga.

 

(182) Maheebhartaa -The husband of Mother Earth. The Sanskrit term

for husband is Bhartaa and the term denotes `Supporter'. In the

Puranic language we have the description of how the Lord, as the

Great Boar uplifted the earth from the "waters of Deluge." Viewed

from the platform of philosophy, just as gold is the supporter of all

things made of gold, the Infinite Consciousness is the Essence from

which everything has risen. Hence He is the Lord, the Supporter, the

Husband (Bhartaa) of Mother Earth and everything that exists in her.

 

(183) Sreenivaasah -The permanent abode of Sree. Mother Sree

connotes "all Glory and power, faculties and strength, to be good and

to perform creative acts of righteousness". She is found to remain

never permanently in any bosom. Even saints and sages, in recorded

history, have come to compromise the perfections in them. The only

place, where imperfections never enter to molest the serene essence,

is the seat of Eternal Perfection, which is the bosom of Narayana.

Hence Maha Vishnu is indicated as Sreenivaasa –"the Permanent Abode

of Lakshmi".

 

(184) Sataam Gatih -For the truly virtuous and for all spiritual

seekers (Sat-People) He who is the final Goal. In the language of the

Geeta He is the "Paraa gatih". The term gati is used to denote not

only the goal, but the very movement, as well as the direction and

the way. Narayana is the very Direction, Path, Progress and the Goal

for his devotees.

 

(185) Aniruddhah -One who cannot be obstructed or resisted by anyone.

Irresistibly, the will of the Lord functions in the world of created

things-and-beings. Just as in the world of matter, the laws of nature

are irresistible, the Rhythm and Harmony of Truth ever march in their

Eternal Logic of objectless Love and immaculate perfection. Time and

tide wait for none. When the sun rises, the living creatures absorb

energy and nothing can obstruct this process. In the presence of the

Self, the worlds of matter must get thrilled into their own

independent activities, and in all these welter of efforts and

exertions, achievements and failures, joys and sorrows, the Self is

not involved by the Irresistible Enchantment of His presence, the

Gopis seek their own fulfilment in their own dances. In the Puranas,

we find Bhagavan Vishnu taking up in His various Incarnations

different manifested forms and in all of them He was victorious; ever

irresistible (Aniruddhah) is His Might.

 

(186) Suraanandah -The One who doles out happiness (Aananda) even for

the Denizens-of-the Heavens (Suras). In the Upanishad we have the

declaration, that the Infinite Perfection, the Lord is of the very

nature of Absolute Bliss. In the Aanandavallee of Taittireeya

Upanishad we find the arithmetics of Bliss. The Rishi concludes that

all joys of the world and heavens-mental and supramental-are all but

flickerings of the Infinite Bliss, which is the Lord Mahavishnu.

 

(187) Govindah -The word Go in Sanskrit has four

meanings: `Earth', `Cows', `Speech' and `Vedas'. As the earth is the

supporter of everything that is existing, He, who is the supporter of

everything within the individual, is called Govinda; He, who is the

Protector of the Cow's and played the part of Gopaala in Gokula, is

the very controller of the animal instincts and passions in the bosom

of man; "One, without whom, no speech can ever emerge out of any

throat-He being the very Life in all Creatures" says Kenopanishad;

and the Highest Speech is the declaration of Truth in the Vedas. The

Lord Himself is the very Theme and the Author of the Vedas. This

great Self is Mahavishnu.

 

(188) Govidaam Patih -One, who is the Lord of all `seers' and "Men of

Wisdom". We have already indicated that Go means Vedas. Govit-

Vedavit-those, who have realized the Theme indicated in the Vedic

declaration as the Essential Reality in their Own subjective bosom.

They are called the Seers or Sages. To such Men-of-Wisdom the Self-

alone is the Lord and the Master.

 

 

 

Stanza 21

 

mareechir-damano hamsah suparno bhujagottamah

hiranyanaabhah sutapaah padmanaabhah prajaapatih.

 

 

(189) Mareechih -The term Mareechih means `Effulgence'. Consciousness

illumines objects and therefore in terms of worldly knowledge the

Upanishads declare that the Supreme is the Light-Infinite. In the

Geeta we read Bhagavan, Vaasudeva declaring: "I am the Light in all

effulgents" -(Geeta Ch. 10, St. 36).

 

(190) Damanah -One who restrains and controls every Raakshasic

impulse within the bosom. In the forms of the ten incarnations, He

had controlled the irresistible tyrannies of the vicious against the

good. In the form of pain and agitation, sorrow and death, it is He,

who is the Controller, Damanah, of all negative tendencies in

everyone's Heart.

 

(191) Hamsah -One of the great declarations of the Vedas is: "I am

Brahman" (Aham Brahmaasmi). Here the term I, the first person

singular used, denotes the supreme. Self functioning through the

conditionings." This individual concept is called jeeva. Thus I, the

Jeeva (Aham), once detached from the conditionings, IS essentially

nothing other than He, the Lord (Sah). This experience that Aham is

Sah is the very God-consciousness and therefore, Vishnu, the Supreme

State of Realization is declared as Hamsah.

 

(192) Suparnah -Parna means wings; Suparna means that which has

beautiful wings-bird. "A pair of white- winged birds extremely

friendly sit on one and the same tree; one cats the fruits, the other

eats not and gazes on".

 

Thus traditionally in the Upanishads, the Suparnas suggest the

Jeevaatmaa and the Paramaatmaa sitting on the same tree (body): one

(Jeeva) eats the fruits (of actions) and the other (the Self) merely

gazes on (Saakshee). Vishnu is this All-experiencing Principle of

consciousness.

 

(193) Bhujagottamah -The sacred serpent named in the puranas as

Ananta. " Among the serpents I am Ananta," says Krishna: -(Geeta Ch.

10, St. 29).

 

(194) Hiranyanaabhah -He, who supports at His navel, the creator,

Hiranyagarba. The meaning for this term as given by some is "the One

who has the navel region beautiful in its golden hue" must fail, in

the context of the thoughts in the stanza, to appeal to all seekers.

 

(195) Sutapaah -One who has glorious Tapas. Consistent creative

thinking is called tapas. For this, mental concentration is

unavoidable. Mind cannot have consistent concentration unless it can

have a perfect control over the sense-organs. Even when the mind is

withdrawn from the sense-organs, it must have a consistent

intellectual ideal to concentrate upon. In the Upanishad, we

read: "He thought and through thought, He created all this".

 

(196) Padmanaabhah -One who supports at His navel the very seat of

all creative-power. We have described this term earlier (48).

According to Sankara, here the term may mean one who has a navel

region which in its rounded beauty, is as charming as the lotus

flower .

 

(197) Prajaapatih -The Lord of the creatures. Since all creatures

have emerged from Him, the living creatures are His children (Prajaa)

and He is their Pati. The term Pati has a direct meaning: `father'.

Thus Vishnu, as the only source from which all creatures have emerged

out, is called as Prajaapatih.

 

 

 

Stanza 22

 

amrityus-sarva-drik simhah san-dhaataa sandhimaan sthirah

ajo durmarshanah saastaa visrutaatmaa suraarihaa.

 

 

(198) Amrityuh –One who knows no decay Birth, growth, decay, disease

and death, are the five great modifications through which every

finite objects must necessarily pass. Everything born must perish.

The one who has no birth has no death. The waves die but not the

ocean. That which is Changeless in the changing whirls of matter is

the Infinite Vishnu. In the Bhagavad Geeta, the Lord is emphatic: "He

who sees the Changeless amidst the changing names and forms, He alone

sees the meaning and purpose of life."

 

(199) Sarvadrik -The seer and knower of everything. The Consciousness

that illumines all motives and intentions -and the manifested

activities that spring from them -in each individual, at all times,

is necessarily the Witness of all, the Seer of everything, Maha

Vishnu.

 

(200) Simhah -One who destroys. The Law be- hind all destruction and

change in the Maayaa is the Mighty Lord. On transcending the Vehicles

of the body, mind and intellect, at a time when all experiences of

perceptions, emotions and thoughts are annihilated from us, the

Experience left over is the Supreme. And in the Non-dual Supreme,

there cannot be any object other than itself. Therefore, that "State"

is called as the Total Destroyer. The State of Waking is

the "destroyer" of the dream-world; the State of Sleep is

the "destroyer" of the waking and the dream; the State of God

Consciousness is the total " Annihilator" of all the known three

planes of Consciousness. He is Simhah -a word that has been formed by

the mutual transposition of the letters in Himsaa.

 

Even taking its obvious superficial meaning Vishnu is a Lion in our

bosom, in as much as, He is the king of the forest of Samsaar: at the

roar of Narayana all the animal-passions flee from the jungles of the

mind. In the Geeta while describing His own Glory, the Lord

says, "Among the animals, I am the King of animals, Lion." -Geeta Ch.

10, St. 30.

 

(201) Sandhaataa - The Co-relator, the Regulator, the One who co-

relates the actions and their fruits. In fact, the fruit of an action

is nothing other than the action itself; the action itself presents

as its fruit in a different period of time, maturing under its own

Law. This Great Law is the Lord, whom the devotee accepts as "The

Giver of all fruits of action".

 

202) Sandhimaan - The structural engineering of individuality is the

mightiest of phenomenon available in nature. The Supreme is the Law

and the Law-giver; and the Light of Consciousness functioning in the

mind and intellect Itself is the individuality (Jeeva), that comes to

suffer the good and bad results of the actions. Thus not only that it

is He, who is the Giver of the results but It is He, again, Who is

the enjoyer or the sufferer of the results. Hence He is called as the

One who is apparently conditioned by the actions that emanate from

Him, Sandhimaan, enjoyer (conditioned). In fact, He is the One

presiding over and illumining all actions; the very Law of reaction

Itself; the ensuing experience in all actions of all people, at all

times. From the standpoint of our existence, with reference to our

individual existence, the Divinity in us, for all appearances, seems

to be conditioned; this Sandhimaan, the Jeeva in His own Pristine

Purity is Maha Vishnu.

 

(203) Sthirah -Firm, consistent. One who is ever consistent in His

nature and One who remains changeless, at all times.

 

(204) Ajah -Unborn. Ajah is also a term denoting the Creator,

Brahmaaji; He who, in the form of Hiranyagarbha, apparently creates

the delusory world of plurality is Vishnu.

 

(205) Durmarshanah -One who cannot be attacked and vanquished. In the

long run, everyone in his own maturity will have to come and accept

and walk the path of Vishnu -He is the final Goal. In the lesser

levels of evolution, the animal-man may deny himself the peace and

joy of living the spiritual values, and deluded by the senses and

enchanted by the flesh, he may live a life of sense-joys and

temporary fulfilments. But soon enough irresistibly he will be

seeking the "feet" of Vishnu for real happiness and true achievement.

His also is the final victory and one can stand apart from Him in a

victory over him.

 

(206) Saastaa -One who rules over the universe, Not only that He is

the Administrator of the laws of the Phenomenon but also He is the

Saastaa. He is the One who, through Sastra, with firm hand, instructs

and guides us through the righteous path, drives us along steadily to

progress in cultural beauty and finally reaches us at the Great Goal

of all evolutions: the Seat of Vishnu.

 

(207) Visrutaatmaa -The famous term Aatmaa, famous in all the Vedas,

is Vishnu. This term clearly shows that all the thousand terms, used

herein, though can be considered for the Saguna worship of Vishnu,

represent nothing other than the Pure Self, which is the famous theme

of the Hindu Scriptures. Through hundreds of suggestive definitions,

this Great Self has been successfully pointed out through

declarations of Its Transcendental Nature and through statements of

negation indicating what He is not.

 

(208) Suraarihaa -Sura="God of the Heaven", Ari="enemies",

Ha="destroyer". The Supreme is the Destroyer of the enemies of the

gods. The sensuous claims of the flesh, the mild assertions of the

ego, the nocturnal devils of i desires and passions, are the common

enemies of the higher mind aspiring to evolve. When invoked with true

devotion, He who drives away and destroys the inimical negative

tendencies, and helps the devotee to master himself, is Suraarihaa,

Sri Narayana.

 

 

 

Stanza 23

 

gurur-gurutamo dhaama satyas-satya-paraakramah

nimisho-a-nimishah sragvee vaachaspatir-udaara-dheeh.

 

 

(209) Guruh -The teacher, who initiates seekers into the secrets of

the sacred scriptures is called the Guru. Since the Lord, the

infinite alone, is the very author and knower of the Vedas, He is the

Teacher in all spiritual study. Aatman being the Light, that

illumines the knowledge in the teacher, his very capacity to speak

and the very ability in the student to hear, understand and apprehend

this great Truth, He alone is the Teacher wherever there is any

transference of knowledge.

 

(210) Gurutamah -The Greatest Teacher; One who had inspired with

knowledge and initiated the very Creator Brahmaaji into the knowledge

of the four Vedas. The creative mind of the very first Spiritual

Master must have received this experience of the Transcendental,

initiated by none other than the Supreme Itself. Later on, the Man of

Realization might come to help other seekers, and to that extent the

following generations of disciples, can, no doubt, psychologically

believe that the teacher guided them to Truth. But, in fact for all

times to come, the final experience of the theme of the Vedas is

arrived at only through the final revelation, which has nothing to do

with the teacher or the text. Svetaasvatara Upanishad (6-18)

says, "He who first Created the Creator (Brahmaa) and imparted him

the Vedas."

 

The Guru and the scripture, devotion to God, meditation, moral

conduct and the religious discipline are all necessary, in as much

as, they prepare the bosom of the seeker for the dawn of realization.

But the final unveiling is done by the Infinite alone, and hence,

Vishnu, the Self, is the best among the Gurus. Heaviness is called by

the same term (Gurutvam), and in this sense the Lord is Indicated

here as "that which is heavier than the heaviest.

 

(211) Dhaama -The Goal; the Sacred destination of a pilgrimage. The

Supreme is the Param-dhaama, the `Supreme Destination', having

reached which, there is nothing more to reach beyond. This Absolute

State of Perfection is called the "Peak" (Dhaama). The Sanskrit term

Dhaama also means "Effulgence" (Tejas); the Pure Consciousness as the

illuminator of all experiences is considered and glorified as the

Light of all Lights etc.

 

(212) Satyah -One who is Himself the Truth. The difference from the

general connotation, we have for the term "That which remains without

a change in the past, present and future" is called Sat yam. "Truth,

Knowledge, Infinite is Brahman", thunder the scriptures. Brihad

Upanishad (4-1-20) says, "The Praanas are the truth, and He is the

Truth of them."

 

(213) Satyaparaakramah -Dynamic Truth. Passive truthfulness is the

harbour of the fools, the dark den of the cowards; although it is any

day better than suicidal un- truth and criminal dishonesty. The Lord,

the Infinite is not only Himself the Truth but He is Dynamic in

insisting that "Truth shall prevail, not untruth". Not only gravity

is a law of nature, itself ever truthful, but it insists that none

shall escape its influence or disobey sway. So too, the Infinite Law

of Harmony and Love is an Inevitable Truth persisting with insistence

in life. The Lord is therefore indicated by the term "

Satyaparaakramah".

 

(214) Nimishah -The condition of "the eyelids closed" is called

Nimishah; the unwinking is called Animishah. When the eyes are open,

the mind is extrovert; the condition of mental introvertedness is

expressed in an unconscious closing of the eyes. When a man is deeply

thinking, remembering, contemplating, we find him naturally closing

his eyes.

 

In a state of intense contemplation, when the intellect is turned

away from the objects-of-experiences, the bosom experiences the One

Divine "Subject" both within and without. The Lord is described here

as "with eyes closed", only to indicate that He is ever rooted in

Himself; from Him viewed, there exists nothing other than Himself to

constitute the world- of-objects.

 

(215) Animishah -One who remains unwinking. Whenever we wink both the

eyelids close together and what we are seeing is at least technically

veiled from the seer in the eye. The Supreme is indicated here by the

term "unwinking", in the sense that, the consciousness is Ever-

Knowing. In Sankara's words, in Chandogya Bhaashya, "there is no

cession of knowing in the knower".

 

(216) Sragvee -A garland is called Srak and, therefore, the term

means One who is constantly wearing a garland of undecaying flowers.

The famous garland of Vishnu is called Vaijayantee.

 

(217) Vaachaspatir-Udaaradheeh -Vaachaspati is a term given to One

who is eloquent in cham" pioning the Supreme law of life; and Dheeh

means the power of intelligence; and Udaaradheeh one who has a "Large-

hearted intelligence", One who is not puritanical in his view

points. God is not only the Declarer of the Law but He has a large-

hearted tolerance to appreciate the weakness of the devotee's heart,

suffering under the delusion of Maayaa, and hence, has a great

sympathy for the weakness in us This is expressed in God's Infinite

kindness towards sinners in general.

 

The laws of spiritual living can be disobeyed for a long time without

any tyrannical onslaught, unlike the law of physical nature, which is

blind and uncompromising. Fire knows no mercy. But Narayana, the

Great Vishnu, is kind and considerate the while He expresses the

Truth of Life eloquently at all times around us. In His Large-

heartedness, He has enough paternal kindness to overlook our

trespasses.

 

 

 

Stanza 24

 

agraneer-graamaneeh sreemaan nyaayo netaa sameeranah

sahasra-moordhaa visvaatmaa sahasraakshas-sahasrapaat.

 

 

(218) Agraneeh -One wh0 guides us to the end -the peak. Also the One,

wh0 leads (Agra) the entire pilgrim- age-the Guide. He moves ahead

and following His footsteps, keeping Him in our gaze, faithfully

following Him, we shall reach the Goal and thus He is called as the

leader, Vishnu.

 

(219) Graamaneeh -One who controls, guides and leads

the "Collection", the "flock" (Graama). In Sanskrit Graama means "a

collection of many number of things".

 

(220) Sreemaan -Sree means Light, Effulgence or glory. Consciousness

has all these three, and therefore, Sreemaan means the Self, the

Lord.

 

(221) Nyaayah -The word in its direct meaning is "Justice". In the

spiritual world, it connotes logical arguments (Tarka) and lines of

contemplation (Yukti), which help us in arriving at the absolute

experience indicated in the Sruti, are together called Nyaaya.

 

(222) Netaa -the leader-one who protects, nurtures, nourishes and

guides all living creatures in the world. One who is being the

Superintendent of the machinery of life -("Jagat-Yantra Nirvaahakah")-

Sankara.

 

(223) Sameeranah -One who efficiently administers all movements of

all living creatures. In the physical body, all physiological

activities are controlled by the five `Praanaas' and thus in the form

of `Praanaas' He who governs all movements of all living creatures in

the universe is Maha Vishnu.

 

(224) Sahasria-Moordhaa -One who has endless number of heads. All

living creatures are His manifestations and He Himself is the One who

has become the many. Therefore all heads are His, just as in a

factory the proprietor considers all the employees as his

own `hands'. Here the term Sahasra means innumerable.

 

(225) Visvaatmaa -The very Soul of the universe; the very inner

Essence in all living creatures.

 

(226) Sahasraakshah -In describing the macro- cosmic form of the Lord

we have an endorsement of this declaration in the Bhagavad Geeta.

 

227. Sahasrapaat -In the Purushasookta of the Rig-Veda, the same

terms are used in describing the Infinite Form of the Mighty Truth:

("The Purusha is thousand-headed, thousand-eyed, and thousand-

footed.")

 

The "many heads" (224), "many eyes" (226), "many legs"

 

(227), together indicate that, through all these equipments of

thinking (head), of action (leg) and of perception (eyes), the

Thinker, the Doer and the Seer, the One Infinite Consciousness

expresses everywhere, in all forms, at all times, and He is Lord

Vishnu.

 

 

 

Stanza 25

 

aavartano nivrittaatmaa samvritah sam-pramardanah

ahassamvartako vahnir anilo dharaneedharah.

 

 

(228) Aavartanah -One who is the Unseen Dynamism behind the ever-

whirling wheel-of time upon which play the endless drama of birth and

death. The repetition (Aavartanam) of these changes is the experience

of Samsaar, and the One mighty Lord, in whose presence alone the

factors of matter start their thrilled dance of decay, is indicated

here (Aavartanah) as "the Great Power behind the continuity of change

in the world of phenomena". In the Geeta, Bhagavan says, "O Arjuna,

the Lord dwells in the heart of all, and spins, through His Maayaa,

all layers of personal ties as though the universe is a complicated

machinery."

 

(229) Nivrittaatmaa -The pure Self, which has retreated totally

(Nivritta) from all Its identifications with matter. In short, Maha

Vishnu is the Pure Self, ever Immaculate and totally Free from all

the sorrows of the constant modifications taking place apparently in

the Prakriti.

 

(230) Samvritah -One who is completely veiled from the recognition of

the "Perceiving-feeling-thinking entity", the ego (Jeeva) .The Self

is veiled away from direct experience of all Jeevas. This

intellectual state of non-apprehension (Aavarana) creates the

agitation (Vikshepa) which is the cause for the misapprehensions of

Truth as the sad and sorrowful world of imperfections. Thus veiled,

lies the Truth today to the seeker, and that Glorious spiritual

Centre is Vishnu.

 

(231) Sampramardanah -One who persecutes relentlessly men, who are

sensuous, evil-minded, and so, fully extrovert in their personality

(Raakshasas). In the form of disease, decay, disaster or death That

which manifests to annihilate the pride, vanity and conceits of

all "animal-men", as they live drowned in their flesh cravings, low

emotions and materialistic values, is the Ultimate Reality-the

Supreme Lord Vishnu.

 

(232) Ahassamvartakah -One who thrills the day (Ahas) and makes it

function vigorously (pravartakah). The one who dynamises the day and

lends the enchantment of joy to all living creatures is the Sun. The

Mighty Truth, who, in the form of the Sun, gives life to all and

lends this energy to them to act, is Vishnu. In the Geeta, Lord

Krishna says, "Please understand that I am the Light of the Sun that

illumines all earth; and the light and heat in the moon and fire are

all mine only."

 

(233) Vahnih -Fire. One, who is worshipped at the altar as the God of

gods, was Fire in the Vedic period. Invoking the various deities,

oblations were poured into the Fire in Vedic ritualism and Lord Fire

is entrusted with the duty of conveying the oblations to the

appropriate deities Invoked by the devotee.

 

In short, Vishnu is the Omniscient Lord, who conveys appropriate

Karma-phala to the Kartaa (doer) and thus fulfils all actions of

everybody, at all times.

 

234. Anilah –This term has four distinct meanings. All of them are

appropriate here. (a) Air (Vaayu); living creatures; (b) "Beginning-

less" (Aadi-rahitah); that Truth, from which the concept of time

itself has born, must have been there even before time, manifested,

and therefore, in terms of our intellectual concept of time, we can

only say that He is "Beginningless"; © `Eater' of food (Attaa); all

experiences that satisfy the inner man is called the "food", and

since all experiences are lived only when illumined by the

consciousness, the Supreme, in terms of our experience is called

the "Eater" and (d) "The Homeless" since He is All-pervading He is

the shelter of all and He is not sheltered by anything.

 

235. Dharaneedharah -One who supports (Dharah) the earth (Dharanee).

The field of our experiences is the earth, and for all our earthly

experiences, Consciousness is at once the very substratum and the

very Illuminator. In the Light of Consciousness alone, the web of

happenings around is held together to provide us with our

experiences.

 

 

 

Stanza 26

 

suprasaadah prasannaatmaa visva-dhrik- visvablluk- vibhuh

satkartaa satkritah saadhur jahnur-naaraayano narah.

 

 

236. Suprasaadah -One who is full of the Supreme Grace and who, so

little, so easily, becomes so entirely satisfied. Even to those who

can remember Him, even if it be in a spirit of constant and faithful

antagonism, His Grace is readily available. In Bhaagavata we read

Pootanaa, who tried to poison Him, Kamsa, who planned to murder Him,

or Sisupaala, who falsely accused Him-all of them were ultimately

rewarded by the Lord. In the Geeta, He confesses, "with a little am I

satisfied, if it is given with sincerity, and with faithful

consistency".

 

237. Prasannaatmaa -Ever-Pure and All- Blissful Self. The Supreme is

ever-pure because, It is untouched by the sorrows lived by matter,

when matter is ruled over by its gunas. In Geeta we read that the

cause for all the sorrows of the individuality (Jeeva) is the

attachment with matter and its various imperfect conditions (Gunas).

Since He is untouched by them He is Ever-Pure; and since no

identification of matter is in Him, He is all-Bliss.

 

238. Visvadhrik -As a Mighty Source of all existence in every thing

and every being, He is the Supporter (Dhrik) of the total world of

all perceptions, all emotions and all thoughts (Visva).

 

Herein the Supporter and the supported being essentially one, no

calamity comes to the Lord by the increase in population. Ocean, the

supporter of the waves, can never feel bothered by the stormy surface

and the consequent increase in the number of waves.

 

239. Visvabhuk -The One who enjoys or swallows (Bhuk) all experiences

(Visva). The Supreme Consciousness apparently conditioned by the mind

and intellect is the experiencer of the joys and sorrows.

 

The term also means, "the One who absorbs unto Himself all names and

forms" at the time of the dissolution (Pralaya) .In the plane of God-

consciousness all other experiences, gathered in fields of waking,

dream and deep- sleep, are transcended and, therefore, the State of

Perfection can be figuratively indicated as "Visvabhuk" the One who

swallows all other experiences of plurality".

 

240. Vibhuh -One who manifests Himself in an endless variety of

forms. Though essentially the Infinite is One, Non-Dual and All-

Pervading, the Reality, when viewed through the equipments of mind-

and-intellect (Maayaa) seems to have apparently become the

pluralistic world. Mundakopanishad (1-6) says, "He is Eternal and

Multiform." Based upon this idea we have in the Puranas, the

description of the Lord's incarnations and His play in the world of

the many.

 

241. Satkartaa -One who revels and adores those who are good and

wise. His palace is ever lit up with His hospitality and He Himself

presides over the loving reception of the righteous.

 

242. Satkritah -One who is adored by all good people, not only is He

adored and worshipped by great men of wisdom and devotion-as the

Sanatkumaaras, Naarada and others-but He is invoked and worshipped

consciously by all living creatures. The Upanishad describes every

experience of all living creatures as a Yajna in which the stimuli

received are the `Oblations' poured at which the inner Consciousness

flares up into brilliancy.

 

243. Saadhuh -One, who functions strictly according to the righteous

code of living is a Saadhuh Atman, the Self, is the Mighty Presence,

which apparently lends intelligence and capacity to inert matter. The

Supreme Saadhu is Vishnu Himself.

 

244. Jahnuh -leader of men; the One who leads all creatures along the

path of an inexorable law-the law of action and reaction, the rhythm

of Karma. Irresistibly, the good is led, by his own subjective

disharmony, dashes to reach a hell made by himself for himself.

 

245. Naaraayanah -This simple sacred word has an endless number of

direct and indirect meanings, imports and suggestions, and Vyasa

seems to have explored almost all its possibilities.

 

1. The Shelter (Ayanam) for man (Nara) is Naaraayana.

 

2. The term Nara implies the ego-centric individuality and a large

collection of them is called Naara and the One who is the sole refuge

for the entire living creatures is called Naaraayanah.

 

3. Nara also means Eesvara and the elements (Tattvas) born out of Him

are called Naara; and One who is the controller, the regulator, the

very source of all Existence. in these very Tattvas is called

Naaraayanah.

 

4. Naaraah also mean "waters". According to the picture painted in

the Puranas of the Deluge, wherein the names, and forms devolve

themselves into their elemental waters, the Lord is objectively

described as lying alone upon the waters, the Eternal baby, floating

upon a banyan leaf. "Holding in His Lotus-hand His own Lotus-feet,

and sucking His own toe with His Lotus-lips, the Lotus child resting

playfully upon a banyan leaf, floating up on the waters of the Deluge-

I meditate."

 

It is in this sense, we find Manu interpreting the word "Naaraayana".

In the great devotional classic, Bhaagavatam, we find very many

suggestions digged out of this sacred name; such as the `Self of all

bodies', "the Dynamic Force behind matter", "the Witness of all good

and bad". All these indicate that Sri Narayana is nothing other than

the Glory (Ayanam) of the Self.

 

246. Narah -The Guide: One-who guides all creatures strictly

according to their actions is none other than the Ancient (Sanaatana)

Self.

 

 

 

Stanza 27

 

asankhyeyo-aprameyaatmaa visishtah sishta-krit-suchih

siddhaarthah siddhasankalpah siddhidah siddhisaadhanah.

 

 

247. Asankhyeyah -Sankhyaa means number; Asankhya=numberless.

Asankhyeyah is one who has numberless names and forms. The infinite

variety of things and beings that constitute the manifested Universe

are all His Own Form, and hence He is indeed numberless, whom He

expresses Himself as the Universe. In the 11th Chapter of Geeta, we

see through Arjuna's eyes the Cosmic Form of the Lord. Of boundless

forms on every side with numberless arms, stomachs, mouths and eyes-

neither end nor middle, nor beginning do I see, O Lord of the

Universe.

 

248. Aprameya-Atmaa -Prameya=Pramaana Vishaya-anything that can be

known through any of the "Sources-of-knowledge"-direct or indirect.

Atman, the Self, cannot be apprehended by the intellect through any

of the known "Sources-of-Knowledge" (Pramaana) and so He is called as

Aprameya. One who has this nature is the Self, Aprameya-Atmaa, Sri

Narayana.

 

249. Visishtah -The One who transcends every- thing, in His Glory is

the Supreme (Visishtah). Something that is other than the three

bodies, something other than the five kosas, something definitely

different from the finite world of perishable things is the Infinite

Self-which cannot be defined in terms of either the waking or the

dream or the sleep conditions. The Self is something other than all

these:

 

This Supreme-most Troth is Maha Vishnu.

 

250. Sishtakrit -One who governs; One who is the Law Maker and the

Law that governs the universe. The goal of His administration is the

protection of the good (Sishtah). Maha Vishnu is the Governor of all,

and the Protector of the good.

 

251. Suchih -One who is Pure. The immaculate Reality which is never

contaminated by the Maayaa and its by- products is Maha Vishnu. When

dirt (Mala) exists upon anything, it becomes unclean. In the Absolute

Oneness there can be nothing other than itself and therefore the

Fourth-plane-of- Consciousness (Tureeyam) is indicated in our

Scriptures as the Transcendental Ever-Pure Self, Sri Hari.

 

252. Siddhaarthah -One who has gained all that has to be gained and

achieved all that has to be achieved. That which has to be achieved

in life during an individual's existence have all been classified

under four heads and they are called as the four "aims of life"

(Purushaartha). Theyare Righteousness in conduct, (Dharma), Wealth

and Possession (Artha), desires and ambitions (Kaama), liberation

from imperfections (Moksha). One who has gained all these "four" have

nothing more to gain as there cannot be any sense of imperfection in

Him. One who has gained (Siddhah) all that has to be gained (Arthah)

is Siddhaartha, Lord Vishnu.

 

253. Siddhasankalpah -Sankalpa means "intellectual willing and

wishing". One who gains all that He wishes for, or One who

immediately gains what He wills is called Siddha-sankalpah.

Ordinarily we fail to gain what we demand because of the

disintegration within ourselves. The Lord, the Perfect, is One who

instantaneously gains all that He wishes; hence the Upanishads define

Him as the Satya Sankalpavaan. This great Paramesvara of the

Upanishads is the Maha Vishnu, the theme of the "Thousand Chants'

(Sahasranaama).

 

254. Siddhiddah -One who is the Giver of the appropriate reward for

all actions, for those who are doing spiritual practices. Lord

Narayana is the great Universal Power that brings about the reward

for all actions.

 

255. Siddhi-Saadhanah -One who is the very secret force which enables

the seeker to diligently continue all efforts of his seeking. Siddhi

ordinarily means "fulfilment", here it means all efforts at a given

fulfilment. It is also interpreted by some as the One Mighty Reality,

to worship at whose altar is the very means (Saadhana) for all

achievements (Siddhi), and this is Sri Narayana.

 

 

 

Stanza 28

 

vrishaahee vrishabho vishnur-vrishaparvaa vrishodarah

vardhano vardhamaanascha viviktah sruti-saagarah.

 

 

256. Vrishaahee -The term Vrishah is very familiar with the

ritualistic portion of the Vedas and it connotes objectively the

sacred "Left over" after the Yajna functions. Subjectively, Vrisha

means the residual `results' gathered in the personality after each

devoted and dedicated act of offering, during all Self-less services

(Yajnas). Therefore, Vrishaahee means "One who is a controller of all

actions and the dispenser of all results", in all individual,

conscious, intelligent creatures.

 

257. Vrishabhah -The term Vrisha though not very familiar now is used

in the Vedic literature to indicate Dharma-"the essential nature of a

thing without which the thing cannot remain as the thing" is its

Dharma. One who showers all Dharmas is called Vrishabhah. In short,

one who showers glowing health, burning devotion and thrilling

silence on all sincere seekers and faithful devotees is Vrishabhah;

and He is Sri Narayana.

 

258. Vishnuh -All-Pervading: Long-Strident. We had already explained

this term earlier (2). In Mahabharata we also read the Lord Himself

explaining to Arjuna, "Because I stand striding across the Universe

(Kramanaat), O Partha, I am known as Vishnu." -(Mahabharata 12-350-

43).

 

In the Upanishad also we read, "Vishnu has spread Himself and

conquered all these three worlds.

 

259. Vrishaparvaa -We had already explained that Vrisha means Dharma.

The term Parvam means "Ladder", "a flight of steps" that takes us to

the Higher floors (Hence Parvata means mountain). Thus, here, the

term is explained as a flight of steps on the ladder of life to take

one to the Ultimate Reality, the Eternal (Sanaatana) Dharma: "1 am

the way". Vishnu is the One to worship at whose altar will facilitate

the devotee's steady evolution towards the experience of the Higher

consciousness.

 

260. Vrishodarah -Vrisha, that which rains; Udara = belly. The idea

here is the seat of all-creative thinking is resting on a psychic,

centre, roughly indicated by the navel, and hence we find the

description that the total Creator of the universe is sustained and

held aloft at the navel of Maha Vishnu. During Pralaya (sleep)

the "creative power" merges back to its source, and thereafter, upon

waking, the creation again starts; the creative power" manifests

itself and continues its creative activities, from the same point of

Its merger, (Udara). This culminating point of all creation, during

the time of the dissolution-which is also the same from wherein,

during creation, the manifestations of names and forms spring forth

(shower down = Vrisha)- is Vishnu, the Supreme, and hence, He is

called as Vrishodarah, "the Showering Belly."

 

261. Vardhanah -One who is the nurturer and nourisher everywhere, at

all levels of life, both material and spiritual. In short, from the

standpoint of the student, who is studying with devotion

these "Thousand names of the Lord", the term indicates that Vishnu is

the Mighty Power that supplies all spiritual growth, provides all

well-being and ultimately blesses all His devotees with the final

Realization.

 

262 Vardhamaanah -One who can grow Himself into any dimensions; ever-

growing. Since the names and forms of the universe are ever dynamic

and has the unseen movement of progressive evolution everywhere, the

Lord is indicated here as this very "dimensional movement of

progress" (Vardhana). (The Pauraanikas attribute that this name came

to Him because He in His Vaamana incarnation grew

 

Himself to measure under His three steps the whole universe.

 

263. Viviktah -Alone=solitary. Every standing apart from everything.

With reference to the dream and the dreamer, the waker is, we knew,

indeed, separate. Similarly the world of names and forms and its joys

and sorrows, passions and lusts, smiles and tears, though they all

play in the Self, the Supreme is not affected by them.

 

The horrid "ghost" cannot affect the innocent "post". One who thus

remains alone and apart, in His Own Majesty and perfection, even when

the world-of-Maayaa is heaving about is Viviktah. In the daily

happenings of Samsar, in its births and deaths, He remains ever

changeless and ever unaffected. This freedom is indicated in the

Geeta and the Lord explains: "They are in me; I am not in them

 

264. Srutisaagarah -The ocean for all the rivers of all scriptural

thoughts. All scriptures, irrespective of the age, language,

tradition and beliefs, ultimately indicate a Theme which is ever the

same. All scriptures are rivulets of thoughts, flowing through

different terrains of national character and historical climates,

gushing to reach forward the ocean of Perfection, which lies beyond

the dark sorrows of mortality. That which is the goal of all

Scriptures is the Immortal Bliss of God-consciousness, the Maha

Vishnu.

 

 

 

Stanza 29

 

subhujo durdharo vaagmee mahendro vasudo vasuh

naika-roopo brihad-roopah sipivishtah prakaasanah.

 

 

265. Subhujah -He who has graceful arms. This need not be taken as a

description of the physical beauty of the anatomical structure of the

arms but since those arms are ever working in the service of His

devotees on sheltering them (Abhaya) and in blessing them (Varada)

they are full of grace and hence graceful.

 

266. Durdharah -One who cannot be comprehended even by Great Yogis,

who spend long periods of time in meditation. Transcending the mind

and intellect is the "experience" of the Supreme and, therefore, the

mind and intellect can never comprehend It.

 

267. Vaagmee -One who is eloquent of His Glory. The full sense or the

term should embrace not only the eloquence in speech, but all

physical capabilities in the world, all the Glories or the cosmos,

all the beauties or the heart, the total might of the intellect-all

are eloquent of His Glory. Through the scriptures of the world, it is

again He, who speaks to us of our ultimate Harbour beyond the stormy

seas; of Maayaa, in the simple words of brilliant suggestions

declared by the Saints, Sages, Rishis, Prophets and other Divine Men.

 

268. Mahendrah -One who is Lord of even Indra, the Lord or gods. In

philosophy the "Mind" is called lndra (lndriyaanaam Raajaa) and One

who is the Lord of even the "mind" is the Self.

 

269. Vasudah -Vasu means wealth and, therefore Vasudah means One who

enriches all, both in their outer prosperity and in their inner well-

being. Once surrendered unto Him man learns to live ever in dynamic

success, with all the glories of the loving heart, self-controlled

mind, and contemplative intellect.

 

270. Vasuh –The term Vasu has got three meanings: Wealth (Dhana),

Veil (Aacchaadana) and Sun (Aaditya); thus He is the One who

manifests Himself in the form of the external wealth, for He, as the

very sun, nurtures and nourishes the world. He is the One, who veils

Himself from the comprehension and understanding of the unprepared

men of evil temperaments and who possess no true devotion.

 

The term Vasu also can mean "One who lives in" (Vasati iti) all

things and beings of the universe; or it can also mean as "One who

allows all things and beings to exist in Himself" (Vaasayati iti). In

Geeta and in the Upanishads we find the Infinite described as the

very Indweller everywhere in His Eesvara status, and as the very

substratum for the universe in the Pure Transcendental nature.

 

271. Naikaroopah -One who is of Infinite forms in his manifestations;

the single waker's mind becomes itself variegated to serve as the

endless items of the dream-world. The One Supreme "Cause" of the

whole Universe is Vishnu; and all "effects" are but different

expressions of their "cause". In a very familiar chant, traditionally

repeated by all devotees, this Idea has been brought out beautifully.

 

Looking at Him through our distorting instruments of body-mind-

intellect, we see the plurality, and only on transcending this

equipment can we "experience" the Oneness of the Absolute Reality.

 

272. Brihadroopah -Vast of Infinite dimensions; pervading all. One

whose very form (roopa) is the totality of the universe and therefore

as vast as the universe, nay, in the description of the Supreme

Person in the Rig Veda (Purusha- sookta) we read the Rishis declaring

that Vishnu is not only of the total size and dimension of the

Universe but He stands beyond it all by ten digits. – "Atyatishthat

Dasaangulam".

 

273. Sipivishtah -Sipi is the name given to the "Sacrificial cow".

The term denotes the One who sanctified all dedicated offerings

poured into all fields of selfless sacrifices (Yajna). The root Si

has also the meaning of waters; Sipi-`that which drinks water' –"The

rays of the Sun". Thus Sipivishtah would indicate the Supreme, who

is the Presiding deity in the Sun, giving it both its energy of heat

and light. In Geeta, the Lord confesses: "Understand that the light

and energy that expresses themselves through the sun and moon is the

Light and Glory essentially belonging to Me".

 

274. Prakaasanah –The One who illuminates; expressing Itself as the

All-pervading Consciousness in every equipment. He is the knower,

knowing everything in each bosom (Sarvavit) and knowing all things

that are happening in the universe at one and the same time in His

omnisciency (Sarvajnah). He is the Illuminator of all experiences.

Just as the One sun illumines everything in the world the Reality

illumines both the fields of experiences and the knower-of- the-field.

 

 

 

Stanza 30

 

ojas-tejo-dyutidharah prakaasa-aatmaa prataapanah

riddhah spashtaaksharo mantras-chandraamsur-bhaaskara- dyutih.

 

 

275. Ojas-tejo-dyutidharah -One who is the possessor (Dharah) of

Perfect physical virility (Ojas), all brilliancy (Tejas) and every

beauty (dyuti). These three terms indicate perfection at three

different levels of personality known to us at present. Ojas is

glowing health (physical) due to perfect balance in the constituents

(Tattvas) of the healthy body. This virility in us when conserved,

disciplined and trained can, through meditation, be converted into

intellectual "brilliancy" and perfect personality "integration".

 

The shine of an individual, who has thus sublimated Ojas, is termed

in our Sastras as tejas. A Yogi, through intelligent living and

through a devoted life of continued meditation, has thus gathered to

himself ojas and Tejas sufficiently, he, in time, grows to become an

experienced Saint of Divine Realization, a Buddha. The enchanting

atmosphere of irresistible peace and compassion, love and perfection,

knowledge and strength, such a man throws around him, is called the

aura of Divinity (Dyuti). In the lOth Chapter of the Geeta, the

Geetacharya autobiographically confesses, "I am the Might in all

strength; I am the Brilliancy in all that is brilliant."

 

Some commentators are found to take these three terms as separate

names of the Lord. However, Sankara interprets it as one single term.

 

276. Prakaasaatmaa -The Effulgent Self. The One who is the Self in

all hearts, who can be experienced as the Consciousness, which is the

source of all illumination to shine upon all experiences in the three

planes-of-consciousness, in all living creatures, at all times. This

Universal and Absolute Self is Maha Vishnu.

 

277. Prataapanah -The One who manifests Himself as the Essential

Thermal Energy, that lends Life Potential to the very atmosphere

around each living creature. In the words of the Geetacharya, we find

a confirmation to thus declaration when the Lord declares to Arjuna

that He Himself is the Reality that manifests as the heat and light

in the Sun and the Moon, and it is He again who warms up the crust of

the earth and impregnates it with its fertility. (Geeta XV-12 & 13).

 

278. Riddhah -One who is ever full of all prosperity. As the very

Lord of Lakshmi, Vishnu should be one who has all glories (Aisvarya).

When the entire universe of wealth, strength and beauty is itself a

manifestation from Him, He Himself must be the Absolute Glory.

 

279. Spashta-aksharah -Spashtam=clear. One who is clearly indicated

by the Supreme Sound (Akshara), the famous Sound-Symbol of the

Eternal Lord Om. In Geeta we read: "One who chants my name Om and

leaves his body at the time of death thus remembering Me, he shall go

to the Supreme State" In Sanskrit, Kshara means the "Perishable" and

Akshara means the "imperishable." The world of plurality,

the "perishable" is no doubt nothing other than the All-Perfect, the

Immutable Truth, but due to the imperfections of the instruments-of-

perception-body, mind and intellect-the perceiving ego can experience

only this world constituted of a plurality-sense objects, emotions

and thoughts- The ego peeping through the vehicles can never

experience the One co-ordinating Reality, the Divine. When the mind

is hushed and the ego thus sublimated, the Immutable Akshara-factor

is experienced, wherein we gain the clearest (Spashta) understanding

of the Absolute. Since it is thus clear (Spashta) only in Its

Immutable nature (Akshara=Kootastha), Vishnu, the Supreme Self, is

indicated here as Spashtaaksharah).

 

280. Mantrah -One who is of the nature of the Mantras of the Vedas.

The declarations of the Vedas the mantras are the vehicles that will

take us straight into an experience of the Transcendental. The

vehicles are often called by the nan1e of their destination. Mantra

means that which can save us on being properly meditated upon. Only

through the mantras of the Upanishads we ever come to experience the

Supreme Nature of the Lord, and so He is named as Mantrah.

 

281. Chandraamsuh -Rays of the moon. That the moonlight has got an

effect upon the herbs was known to India in the Vedic period. "As the

rays of the moon (Soma) I fill the vegetable kingdom with nutrition",

confesses Bhagavan Vaasudeva. Thus the Lord is One who nurtures and

nourishes all living creatures instilling into each its particular

vitality. Though this is the deep philosophical significance,

superficially the beauty, calm and peace that the moon suggests to

our mind is but a reflection of the Infinite Peace of Vishnu.

 

282. Bhaaskaradyutih -The Effulgence of the Sun. Sun is the centre

of the solar system, an eternal exchequer of energy, ever

distributing Life and Strength to all living upon the earth; life

would have been impossible but for the Sun. At the same time, the Sun

stays where he is and he never interferes with life; from afar he

blesses life. The Lord who thus from afar blesses by His mere

presence is the true Sun of Life, the Atman, the Self- Sree Maha

Vishnu.

 

 

 

Stanza 31

 

amritaamsoodbhavo bhaanuh sasabinduh suresvarah

aushadham jagatas-setuh satya-dharma-paraakramah.

 

 

283. Amritaamsoodbhavah -The moon who has consoling rays that gives

the essential food value (Rasa) to the plants and fruits is called in

Sanskrit as Amritaamsuh. In the Puranas it is described that the moon

was first born from the milky-ocean during its churning. Since Vishnu

is described as ever reposing upon His Ananta-bed in Ksheerasaagara,

the Lord is Himself termed here as the Begetter of the Moon.

Subjectively Moon (Mati) is the Presiding Deity of the intellect, and

the discriminating intellect itself arose when our bosom started

churning the heart by the two forces, the positive -the good (Deva) -

and the negative -Vicious (Asuras). If the Sun is the Presiding Deity

of energy, moon represents the world of matter, and the very source

from which the world-of-matter, Kshetra, has risen is Amritaam-

soodbhavah.

 

284. Bhaanuh -Self-Effulgent; One who expresses Himself for the

blessing of the world in the form of the Sun and presides over the

entire solar system.

 

285. Sasabinduh -The patch in the moon looks like the silhouette of a

rabbit for the naked eye; that which has a "beauty-spot" (Bindu) in

the shape of a rabbit (Sasa) is called Sasabindu -the moon. Since the

Lord is the Nourisher of all and He is Himself the entire world of

matter, He Himself is the Moon "that nourishes with essence all plant

kingdom".

 

286. Suresvarah -Sura means Deva and so the term indicates "the God

of all gods". The word Sura also can be dissolved to mean Giver (Ra)

of Plenty (Su); Sura therefore stands for a person of extreme

charity .The Lord, Eesvara, who prompts and fulfils the loving

kindness of all charitable men is Suresvarah, Lord Vishnu.

 

287. Aushadham -Medicine. Narayana is the Divine Medicine for the

immediate cure for all the burning sorrows of Samsar. Even to

consider it more directly as the specific cure for all bodily

ailments is not necessarily wrong, for ailments of the body are

caused by mental disintegration, and when the inner man has

surrendered in devotion to Him, Lord Narayana indeed becomes a

specific cure for even all the physical diseases of His devotees.

 

288. Jagatassetuh -A reclamation bund thrown across waters

connecting distant islands to the main land is called Setu. Sri

Ramachandraji built one and reached Lanka. The term Jagatassetuh,

therefore, implies that the Lord is Himself the Bridge over which one

can safely cross over the realm of egocentric imperfections and reach

the joyous realms of the Infinite Perfection.

 

289. Satyadharmaparaakramah -One who champions heroically for Truth

(Satya) and Righteousness (Dharma). It can also imply as One who has

Truthfulness (Sat yam), Righteousness (Dharma) and Heroism

(Paraakramah) .In short, Lord is One, who fights constantly against

the false and the unrighteous to establish Truth and Purity.

 

 

 

Stanza 32

 

bhoota-bhavya-bhavan-naathah pavanah paavano-analah

kaamahaa kaamakrit-kaantah kaamah kaamapradah prabhuh.

 

 

290. Bhoota-Bhavya-Bhavan-Naathah - The Lord of the three periods of

time: the past, the present and the future. Lord of Time is the One,

in whose presence alone, time concept is possible. "Time" is the

interval between "thoughts" and the Awareness that illumines the rise

and fall of thoughts is the very Lord of Time. Objectively He is the

Lord of all those, that exist in the three periods of time; or He to

whom all creatures conditioned by time, pray for comforts, solace and

protection.

 

291. Pavanah -One who purifies everything. Or One who manifests as

the life-giving atmosphere around the world and sustains the

existence everywhere.

 

292. Paavanah -In the earlier term "Pavanah" the Lord is indicated as

the One who has, in the form of the atmospheric air, filled the

universe. He is the One who sustains life in all living creatures as

the life-giving atmospheric air. Here, the present term "Paavanah"

means the One who gives this life-sustaining power to the atmospheric

air. It is very well-known that the moving air (Breeze) purifies more

than any other known thing in the world. This purifying power is

acquired by the atmosphere by His Grace. In short, He is the secret

glory that lends the atmosphere, the very life-sustaining property

for the air, and He is the dynamism that moves the air.

 

293. Analah -The term itself means Fire. So He who is in the form of

fire, and sustains life. A certain amount of minimum thermal heat is

necessary for life to continue, be it in the human body or be it in

the Earth itself. This warmth of life in the world around and in the

organism itself, without which life cannot continue. that mighty

warmth of life is none other than the Lord, and hence, He is called

Analah. Also the term `Ana' has the meaning of Praana, and `La' means

to receive. Therefore, the term can also imply "One who is the very

Self, the very Vital Factor, in the Praana".

 

294. Kaamahaa -One who destroys all desires. Desires spring forth

from the Vaasanaas. We can experience the Self only on transcending

the vaasanaas. Just as the sun is the destroyer of night, similarly,

the Pure consciousness, the Atman and the Vaasanaas cannot remain at

the one and the same time. The Vaasanaas end when the Atman is

experienced. From the devotees' stand-point, He is the One who

fulfils all his desires. Or He who is the father of Kaama, Pradyumna,

which again is one of the names of Vishnu.

 

Desire is the source from which endless series of other sources of

sorrows flow into the human life. When a desire arises in the mind,

only two things are possible. Either we fulfil the desire or we do

not. In case we get our desires fulfilled, it is natural for the

human mind to crave for more and thus he becomes restless due to

greed. If, on the other hand, the desire is not fulfilled, anger

rises and when anger increases, it brings about delusion of the mind

and makes the victim see things in others, in himself and the

situation he is in, which are not in fact there around him. In such a

deluded one, Wisdom slips away and, naturally, therefore, his

discriminative power cannot function, since he cannot judge the

present situation with reference to any standard ideal that he had in

the past. When the rational discriminative power fades away that man

falls completely off the dignity of mall and becomes worse than a

brute. Geeta charters thus, a steady psychological fall in a

spiritual being, and this entire chain of self-destruction springs

forth from desire. A devotee, or a meditator, when he approaches this

Great Reality, existing in the subjective Core of his own

personality, he transcends all the realms of his desires and passions

and, therefore, this Great Inner Self is indicated here as

the "Destroyer of all Desires". He is the One who fulfils all desires

in His devotees, and thus bring about a calm fullness of joy within.

 

295. Kaama-krit -One who fulfils all desires. The implications have

been indicated in the analysis of the previous term. It can also mean

as the Very Creator of the Lord of Love-Kaama Deva. Even though

desires spring forth from the realm of the Causal Body, constituted

of the Vaasanaas without the thrilling touch of the Self, even

Vaasanaas cannot express all by themselves. In that sense of the

term, the very agitations of desire, erupt from His Grace. Hence, He

is called the Kaama-krit.

 

296. Kaantah -One who is of enchanting form. Infinite Beauty is the

very nature of the Self, and the Upanishads define the Self as

Saantam-Sivam-Sundaram.

 

The aestheticism in man craves for harmony and where we experience

the greatest of harmony, there we detect the presence of beauty. In

front of beauty, the entire personality of an intelligent man becomes

calm and peaceful, hushed in silence, transported to ecstasy. These

are moments when the meditator has transcended his Sheaths and is in

union with the Pure Self. Naturally therefore, the Pure personality

of an intelligent man becomes calm and peaceful. Self is indicated

here as Kaantah-Divine Auspicious form of Absolute Beauty.

 

297. Kaamah -One who is the beloved. Not only He is the beloved of

the devotees, but every activity of all living creatures is an

attempt at courting and winning bliss and happiness. The Blissful

Self is the goal of all creatures in life. Even insignifical1t

unicellular organisms revolt against pain, and they too seek

happiness. Man is no exception. The Infinite Bliss which is

experienced only on transcending the body, mind and intellect, is

that which is constantly demanded by every organism that breathes in

this universe. In the ignorance of this All Satisfying Goal, the

world suffers. That Lord is the beloved of all devotees, and in fact,

He is also the beloved of even those who deny Him and run after the

sense- objects. The theist seeks Him through devotion or meditation.

The atheist too seeks Him only in and through all his diligent

pursuits of the sense-stimuli.

 

298. Kaamapradah –One who supplies the desired objects; One who

fulfils all desires To the devotee, the Lord, is the giver of all

desired objects, and to a man of meditation, the Lord is that state-

of-mind where all desires are fulfilled- in the sense that no more

can any desire linger in his heart after the Experience-Divine

 

299. Prabhuh -He is the Lord, the Master, the Owner, the proprietor.

One who has all powers to do, not to do and to do otherwise is called

the Great Lord.

 

 

 

Stanza 33

 

yugaadi-krit yugaavarto naikamaayo mahaasanah

adrisyo vyaktaroopascha sahasrajit anantajit.

 

 

300. Yugaadi-krit -One who is the creator of the divisions of aeons,

described in our Puranas, as Yugas. These Yugas are four in number.

Kritam, Tretaa, Dvaapara and Kali. In short, He is the Lord of Time.

By the term Aadi, it must be understood to indicate all other

divisions of Time as Centuries, Years, Months, Weeks, Days, Hours,

Minutes and Seconds. He is not only the Lord of the Yugas, but He is

the Light of Consciousness that illumines the duration of each

experience and the very interval between every pair of subjective

experiences.

 

301. Yugaavartah -In the previous term the Lord is indicated as the

Creator of the Yugas, and here we are told that He is also the Power

behind the wheel of time that goes on changing and repeating itself,

i.e. not only He is the Lord of Time, but He is the Mighty

Administrator of the performances of Time, the very Law behind the

constant flow of the flood of time.

 

302. Naikamaayah -One whose delusory forms are endless and

variegated. According to Puranas, for the sake of sustaining the

world and maintaining its order and rhythm, the Lord had taken

different forms, each of His manifestations well-suited for the times

of His arrival. Thus, we have ten in- carnations. Also, in that

mighty manifestations of the Lord, as Krishna and Raffia, we find

descriptions of how one and the same entity generated different

attitudes and emotions in different types of people. In short, one

who has realised the Self, can thereafter freely play through all his

existing Vaasanaas and none of them can ever entangle him, because he

has grown to be the master of his own Vaasanaas. Maayaa, otherwise

called as Avidyaa, is constituted of the Vaasanaas in us, forming our

Causal Body. One who has transcended this is the One who has realised

the Infinite. Lord is therefore, one who is without Maayaa in Him. An

individual entity, like us, is one who is under the tyrannies of

Maayaa. The Lord is one who can wield Maayaa for His purpose without

Himself becoming involved in it.

 

303. Mahaasanah -This word can be dissolved as He who eats up

everything. One who swallows up all perceptions, emotions and

thoughts, created by the Vaasanaas, at the various levels of

personality, due to our own individual Vaasanaas. At the time of

Samaadhi when the limited ego is ended and the Supreme is experienced

all the expressions of Vaasanaas are, as it were, swallowed by that

Infinite Experience, and therefore, this Great Vishnu is called as

the "Consumer of Everything."

 

304. Adrisyah -Through the sense-organs, the mind and intellect at

this moment, we are aware of the outer objects and our subjective

emotions and thoughts. The ultimate Reality is neither the objects

perceived by us, nor the instruments of our perception. He is the

Subjective Core, the Eternal Essence, wherein, the perceived and the

instruments of perceptions are all totally absent. This Subjective

Reality must necessarily be, by Its very nature, not an object-of-

perception, and hence, It is called as the Imperceptible meaning, He

is the very Perceiver in all perceptions.

 

305. Vyakta-roopah -He who has a form- clearly perceptible to the

meditator in his meditation. The contradiction is so smotheringly

apparent because of the very placing of the term. It is only just-

now, in the above term, that we are told that the Lord is

imperceptible (Adrisyah) and the very following term declares that He

is perceptible. Here it means that though He is not perceptible with

the physical instruments of perceptions, yet on transcending the

equipments, the Yogi intimately comes to experience the entire Divine

Glory of the Self. Though, ordinarily it is not easy to see Him, in

the devotee's heart, the Lord comes to play vividly and drives the

devotee mad in his ecstasy.

 

306. Sahasra-jit -One who vanquishes thou- sands. In all the Puranas

everywhere, it is found that the Incarnations manifest to destroy the

diabolically fallen (Raakshas) who approach the good in endless

hoards to annihilate them. One who conquers over these diabolical

forces is the Lord Vishnu.

 

Subjectively the hosts of passions and lusts, greeds and jealousies

which invade the inner bosom, and loot away the seeker's tranquillity

and peace, are all ultimately vanquished by this Higher Consciousness

and therefore, the Self is indicated as the one who is ever

victorious over all the hoards of our lower impulses.

 

307. Ananta-jit -Ever-victorious. The victory of the Lord is endless;

in every Incarnation, He alone wins in the end. The victory over

negative forces becomes complete when once the Higher Consciousness

is experienced, and hence, the Self is indicated here as Ananta-jit.

 

 

 

Stanza 34

 

ishto visishtah sishteshtah sikhandee nahusho vrishah

krodhahaa krodhakrit kartaa visvabaahur maheedharah.

 

 

308. lshtah -This term can be interpreted in two ways. One who is

invoked through the different types of Vedic rituals (Yajnas), is

Ishtah. Or, it can also mean, One who is loved by all. The Lord being

the very centre of all love in everyone. The Brihadaranyakopanishad

very clearly indicates this idea in almost unvarnished words: "The

man loves his wife not because of the wife, but because of

himself. ...etc."

 

All love spring from our personal love for the Infinite which is the

Self in us.

 

309. Visishtah -One who is the noblest and the most sacred. Vishnu,

the Lord, dwells in the heart of every- one. He is the sole essence

presiding over every physical, mental and intellectual activities in

every living creature and, therefore, He is indicated by this term.

 

310. Sishta-ishtah -To all spiritually minded good people and

therefore sincere seekers, the Lord is the greatest beloved in-as-

much as, He represents the Goal and the Destination of all devoted

seekers. In short, He is the Supreme Beloved for all spiritually

inclined divine hearts.

 

He can also mean that the Lord is one who Himself is sincere and

ardent lover and courtier of all devotees, sincerely and diligently

seeking Him. There are commentators who indicate that the term can

also mean: One who is being constantly invoked and help in adoration

by all true devotees with their physical, mental and intellectual

activities.

 

311. Sikhandee -One who wears `Sikhanda' meaning "the peacock

feather", Lord Krishna is described in Bhagavat as having adorned

with the `eye' of the peacock feather, especially in his early child

and boy-hood.

 

312. Nahushah -The term "Nahanmn" means bondage, therefore, the term

stands for "One who is familiar with bondages," ln Vedanta, the

word `Isvarah' is the Supreme Consciousness conditioned by the total-

Causal-Body (Maayaa); at the same time, Isvara is One who has the

Maayaa under His control, It can also be understood as "One who bind,

all creatures of the world with the cord of Maayaa." Those who are

students of the Puranas interpret this word as One whose glory was

expressed in the spectacular magnificence in Nahushah, who gained the

Office of Indra.

 

313. Vrishah -There is a famous statement in the Hindu tradition from

which we can gather that the Lord is of the nature of Dharma. Dharma

means the essential Law of Being, that because of which an individual

is an individual, without which the individual cannot exist, is the

Dharma of the individual. In this sense, the essential Dharma of one

is the Self. Thus, Vrishah is but another name to suggest that the

Lord Vishnu is none other than the Self in us. It can also mean "One

who showers the fulfilment of all desires in all devotees." Desires

arise when the existing Vaasanaas get impatient and explode into

manifestation. As the desire arises, the mind plans out and the body

acts towards its fulfilment. All these activities are possible only

when the vehicles are thrilled by the Self in us. Thus, ultimately,

one who fulfils all desires is the Lord of our heart, the Atman.

 

314. Krodhahaa -One who destroys anger in all sincere seekers. We

have already found earlier that anger manifests when fulfilment of a

deep desire is obstructed. On realising the Lord, all desires end

and, therefore, there cannot be any anger on any occasion. Also,

anger can come only when we recognise the world of plurality around

us. For one who is experiencing the Self, there is nothing but the

One Self everywhere and, therefore, there is no occasion to entertain

this emotion of anger.

 

315. Krodha-krit-kartaa –One who generates in a sincere and serious

seeker anger against the lower tendencies when they manifest-"Krodha-

krit". Also He is the very creative impulse `Kartaa' behind the lower

tendencies; because all things come out from Him alone. Some

commentators consider this term as two different words, but the

majority consider them as an integrated one.

 

316. Visvabaahuh -One who has number of hands; whose hands are

everywhere doing all activities in the universe. The life in the

bosom as long as it exists, so long alone the hands and the legs

function. The hands can lift and do its job only when it is in

contact with life. Life expressing through the hand is its function.

All hands that are doing variegater activities all over the world are

all His hands in-as- much as, where He is not, that lifeless hand can

perform no more any activity. Since He is thus the dynamic One

Principle that functions through all hands at work, He is called a

Visvabaahuh.

 

317. Maheedharah -One who is the Substratum and support for the

Earth. The Lord is the very material cause for the universe and as

such, He supports the world-just as cotton supports the cloth, mud

supports the pot, gold supports the ornament. Since the term Mahee

also means "the adorations sent up by the devotees," it can also

mean `One who receives all the worship of devoted hearts.'

 

 

 

Stanza 35

 

achyutuh prathitah praanah praanado vaasavaanujah

apaam nidhiradhishthaanam apramattah pratishthitah

 

 

318. Achyutah -One who has not got any modifications (Chyutam) such

as birth, growth, decay, disease, death etc. The Eternal and

Immutable cannot have any change and the Self being the Eternal, it

cannot have any of the changes that are natural to all mortal and

finite things, Upanishads themselves thunder this Truth-"Eternal,

Auspicious and Changeless".

 

319. Prathitah -One who exists pervading all; spreading Himself

everywhere. It can also mean "One whose glory, as described in the

Upanishads, has spread round the world everywhere."

 

320. Praanah -All manifested expressions of life are called as the

Praana. He is the Praana in all-living creatures; meaning, it is His

manifestations that we recognise as the endless activities in all

living creatures in this dynamic world. Also it can mean that "He is

the One who in the form of vital-air, sustains life in all

creatures."

 

321 Praanadah –One who gives strength (Praana) to everywhere The

root `da' has a meaning of destruction and, therefore, the term

comprehends also the power of destruction everywhere According to the

Puranas, therefore, He is the One who gives the strength and glory

for Devas, and again, He is the One who supplies special strength to

them to win over the brutal forces of the diabolically wicked, the

Asuras Subjectively, it is the Self that supplies the mental strength

for cultivating the higher values of life, and it is the same Source

Divine that floods the seekers heart with the courage to annihilate

the lower impulses that come to destroy his peace and tranquillity

within

 

322. Vaasavaanujah -the brother of the Indra. This name has been

acquired by lord Vishnu because of his incarnation as the Adorable

Dwarf-(Vaamana). At that time, the Lord had to take birth in the womb

of Aditi and manifest as the younger brother of Indra. In the

subjective science of Vedanta, the king of the gods (Indra) is the

Lord of the sense organs and so he is the Mind. The spiritual urge

that dawns in us as a younger brother of the Mind, ultimately comes

to measure away and win over the three worlds of waking, dream and

deep-sleep, and thus comes to conquer over the entire kingdom of

Indra in more sense than one.

 

323. Apaam-nidhih -Treasure of waters, meaning the ocean. The very

glory and might of the oceans are all but a reflection of Sri

Narayana's own glory divine. In the Geeta, Bhagavan Himself

says, "among the collections of waters, I am the Ocean."

 

324. Adhishthaanam - the substratum for the entire universe. The

delusory misconceptions can be projected only upon something that is

real and this permanent `post' is called the `substratum' for the

desulory `Gost'-Vision.

 

325. Apramattah -One who has no Pramaada, meaning, `One who never

commits a mistake in judgement." The Lord is the Law behind all

happenings in the universe. The results of the actions are always

strictly according to the quality of the actions. In administering

this Law of Karma, One who never makes any mistake is Apramattah. We

are full of Pramaada -we make the mistake of misunderstanding

ourselves to be the matter equipment around us and due to this

Pramaada, we project in ourselves the false concept of an Ego The

Supreme is ever the Pure Consciousness and, therefore, He is without

such wrong self-judgement.

 

326. Pratishthitah -Everything in the world depends upon something

else to serve as its cause. Since all things that we perceive and

experience in the world are all effects, they have their own causes,

and the effects must necessarily depend upon the cause for their very

existence. The Supreme Lord is the One uncaused Cause with reference

to whom everything is only an effect. Since He is thus the ultimate

Cause, He is not depending upon anything other than Himself. This

self-established Reality is indicated by the term Pratishthitah.

 

 

 

Stanza 36

 

skandah skanda-dharo dhuryo varado vaaryuvaahanah

vasudevo brihat bhaanur aadidevah purandarah.

 

 

327. Skandah -This is one of the names of the youngest son of Lord

Siva, Subrahmanya, who is described in the Purana as Commanander-in-

Chief of the righteous army. Therefore, Skanda means "the Lord, whose

glory is expressed, through Subrahmanya", In order to realise the

Self, it is a prerequisite condition that the different personality

layers in the seeker should be completely integrated.

 

328. Skanda-dharah –"One who upholds the withering righteousness."

Or, "One who fathered Lord Subrahmanya", meaning One who is in the

form of Paramesvara.

 

329. Dhuryah -One who carries the Lord. The Lord is the One who

carries the responsibilities of creation, sustenance and annihilation

of the entire world of plurality. One who carries out these functions

systematically without any hitch round millenniums is Sree Narayana

and He is therefore Dhuryah.

 

330. Varadah -One who blesses all true devotees and fulfils their

request for boons. It can also mean "One who gives the best (Varam)

in life to those who seek Him with perfect detachment and sharpened

discrimination.

 

331. Vaayuvaahanah –"The One who controls, regulates and moves the

great winds". In the Sanskrit literature, the movement of air in the

atmosphere has been classified under seven types and they are called

the `Sapta Marutah'.

 

In short, the inconceivable might and power of the winds and their

life-sustaining abilities are all lent out to the air by His own

munificence and, therefore, He is called as Vaayuvaahanah.

 

332. Vaasudevah –"One who is at once both Vaasu and Deva. Vaasu

means "One who dwells in the physical equipments of all living

creatures as its indweller (Jeeva); Deva means "One who revels or One

who illumines". Thus, Vaasudevah means "One who lives in the physical

equipment as though conditioned by them, and yet, who is the Vital

Consciousness in the light of which every experience is illumined.

The Lord is the One who dwells in all things of the universe and He

is at once the Supporter of the entire world.

 

Also, directly, it can be taken to mean, One who is born as the Son

of Sri Vasudeva in the Jail of Kamsa, the Blue-Boy of Brindaavana. He

is called Vaasu as He veils Himself with His own Maayaa; Deva

means "He who sports, wishes to conquer, conducts, shines, creates

and moves". In the Udyoga Parva of Mahabharata, we read, "Like the

Sun with his rays I am covering (Deva) in all beings and hence, I am

called Vaasudeva".

 

Vishnupurana says, ``as He resides everywhere in and through all

things, He is termed Vaasudevah. " All beings remain in the Supreme,

and He in all being and hence, the Omnipresent is called the

Vaasudeva.

 

333. Brihat-bhaanuh -Possessed of endless rays, meaning "One who

illumines the world with the rays of the Sun and the Moon."

 

Mahabharata says, "He whose great rays are in the Sun, Moon and

others and He who illumines the universe through them is called the

Possessor of great rays.

 

334. Aadidevah –"One who is the Primary source for everything,"

meaning the Lord. He is the First Cause, and hence the first Deity.

 

335. Purandarah –"The destroyer of the cities." City is the well-

equipped field for gathering endless experiences. The three cities

through which we generally move about gathering our experiences in

this world are the waking, dream and deep-sleep, On transcending the

Gross, Subtle and Causal Bodies, one experiences the Self, and at

such a moment these three cities are burned down or pillaged or

blasted, The same ideal is explained in the Shiva-purana also;

accordingly, we can say that He is One who as Mahesvara, performed

the destruction of the three cities.

 

 

 

Stanza 37

 

asokastaaranastaarah soorah saurih-janesvarah

anukoolah sataavarttah padmee padmanibhekshanah.

 

 

336. Asokah –"One who has no sorrows." Sorrow is a condition

experienced when the mind is agitated and extremely disturbed. The

agitations of the mind come from desires, greed, etc. Therefore, the

term Asokah indicates, "One who has none of these negative tendencies

that create in their turn more and more mental disturbances". This is

a true appalation, because, the Lord, as the Self, transcends the

realm of the thought-disturbances constituted by the mind-intellect-

equipment.

 

337. Taaranah –"One who enables others to cross." The ego suffering

the constant agitations of the equipments is saved by the Self. The

ego (jeeva), when it discovers its identity with the Self,

automatically moves away from the sorrows of the vehicles. In short,

as Vishnubhaagavata says, "who is there other than You that can save

us from the wheel of birth and death."

 

338. Taarah –"One who saves is called Taarah, One who saves from the

fear of re-birth and also One who is a constant protector of the

devotees and, therefore, the devotees themselves call Him as the

Saviour (Taarah).

 

These three terms indicate how Vishnu is the Absolute Protector of

His devotees. He saves us from the afflictions (Asoka) of the body

and so Subjective-sorrows (Adhyaatma). He enables us to cross the

ocean of Samsaara (Taaranah) and, therefore, He saves us from all

Cosmic pains (Adhibhootah). He saves us from the elements (Taarah),

and so, He is the Saviour from all sorrows of birth and death; this

indicates all trans-Cosmic tragedies (Aadhidaivika), meaning that

Narayana can save us from all sorrows contributed by the hand God.

 

339. Soorah –"The Valiant". All sources of strength and courage

spring from the Life in us and, therefore, the Lord of the universe

is called here as the Valiant-capable of crushing all unrighteous

forces, however well-trenched they may be in the world.

 

340. Saurih –Soorasena was the father of Vasudeva, and we have

already found that Vasudeva's son is Vaasudeva. Therefore, the Lord

had taken His incarnation in the family of Soora and so He is termed

as `Saurih'.

 

341. Janesvarah -The Lord of the people (jana). Those who are born

are called Jana. Therefore the term indicates that He is the Lord of

all creatures born the universe.

 

342. Anukoolah –"A hearty well-wisher, or friend of everyone". Since

the Lord is the Essential Life in everyone, He is the friend and ally

of every individual in as much as, nobody spends his life except in

concurrence with his own subjective intentions and purposes. Thus,

the Lord is a friend fulfilling the intentions of a murderer, and He

is again the friend of another helping Him to serve the mankind, if

that be his intention. Thus, He is a friend and a devoted ally to

everyone since He is the mighty power behind all Vaasanaas expressing

through all creatures.

 

343. Sataavarttah -Sata means "hundred", and here it is used

as "innumerable". Thus the term' Sataavarttah' means "One who takes

infinite varieties of forms". All forms in the universe are but His

own, inasmuch as, His manifestation is the universe. Again, He takes

innumerable incarnations in order to maintain the taw of the cosmos

and also the law of evolution. It can also mean "One who, as Praana,

moves in the innumerable Naadees in the body".

 

344. Padmee –"One who has the lotus in his hand". The lotus is the

national flower in Bharat as it symbolises in our culture, the Goal

of our Spiritual life. It is to offer this "Knowledge", that the Lord

blows His conch, and if people are not listening to this silent call

of the Higher from within, He uses His gadaa (mace) to give merciful

knocks in life. Still, if an individual or a generation is not

listening to His kindly warnings, He has the Discus (Chakra) in His

hand. He annihilates totally the existing forms and re-creates.

 

345. Padma-nibhekshanah –"One whose eyes are as beautiful as the

Lotus." In short, `lotus-eyed.'

 

 

 

Stanza 38

 

padmanaabho-arvindaakshah padmagarbhah sareerabhrit

maharddhi-riddhah uriddhaatmaa mahaakshah gantdadhvajah.

 

 

346. Padmanaabhah –"One who has the lotus in his navel". This is not

to be taken literally. Navel (Naabhi) is the psychic centre where all

un-manifest thoughts first spring forth into our recognition

(Pasyantee). The seedless state of all thoughts is called in the Yoga

Sastra, as Paraa. It therefore means "one in whose bosom lies, in

potential, all the possibilities of the universe of expression." It

can also mean "One who manifests Himself in the lotus of the heart of

his devotee. Some translate as "He who is seated in the pericarp of

the lotus."

 

347. Aravindaakshah –"One who has eyes as beautiful as the lotus".

The lotus opens at sun-rise and closes in the night. The Lord opens

His beauty and grace in the presence of the devotees and the flood

of His grace, as it were, drys up in the presence of the dark

sensuality of the ignorant.

 

348. Padmagarbhah –"One who is being meditated upon in the centre of

the lotus-of-the-heart."

 

349. Sareerabhrit –"One who sustains nourishes all bodies". Or, it

can mean "One who is form of food and praana, becomes the very cause

for the sustenance of the body". It is a fact very well known that

even though a body can continue existing without visibly decaying for

50 years, once Life has ebbed away, the deadbody cannot maintain its

form and it does not exist even for 48 hours intact. He who while

presiding over the body nourishes and maintains it, and in whose

absence the body decays and nourishes, He is the One who is the

Sustainer of the body (Dehahhrit).

 

350. Maharddhih –"One who has great riddhi, meaning, prosperity and

power". These two-prosperity and power-together is called glory

(Aisvarya). Thus the term means, "One who has by His very nature

glory ever with Him."

 

351. Riddhah -"One who has expanded Himself to be the universe." In

short, "One who has manifested Himself as the entire world of

plurality, constituted of the finite things of the Cosmos."

 

352. Vriddhaatmaa –"The ancient Self." In the Self there is no

concept of Time, It being beyond the intellect. But here, by the term

Vriddhaatmaa, it only means that He was the Self before all creation.

It is only after the creation of Time that we are capable of saying

and indicating Him as the Self of the various living creatures. He is

the first Self, meaning, He is the Self whose manifestations are the

world of plurality.

 

353. Mahaakshah –"The Great-eyed", meaning, the eyes that can see not

only the world-of-objects, but also X-ray through them and see all

that are happening deep within the bosom of all creatures. He is

the "Great Eye" seeing all, at all times, as He is the Consciousness

that illumines everything at all times, in all bosoms.

 

354. Garuda-dhvajah –"One who has the (Garuda) as his insignia on his

flag. The eagle is consider as the vehicle of the Lord; most probably

Because this bird ever soars high and from above sees even the

minutest speck of dirt in the world. The eagle after spying the

carrion, swoops down and takes it away, thus purifying the

atmosphere. Similarly, the Lord never allows any negative thought to

come into the heart of His devotees, and hence, the eagle is

considered as His vehicle.

 

 

 

Stanza 39

 

atulah sarabhah bheemah samayajno havirharih

sarvalakshanalakshanyah lakshmeevaan samitinjayah.

 

 

355. Atulah –"Incomparable." For him whose name is the glory of the

universe, there is no licence." Again, Bhagavat Geeta says, "For Thy

equal exists not, where is another superior to Thee in the three

worlds ?" In short, there is nothing like Him, since He does not fall

under the categories of the things perceived by the body or the

emotions felt by the mind or the thoughts entertained by the

intellect: nothing that we know of can be comparable with Him.

 

356. Sarabhah –"One who dwells and shines forth through the bodies."

Bodies are called Sara because they are perishable. The life that

presides over the perishable body, whose glory is the individuality,

is the Self, the Lord. It can also mean, "Lord, who is of the nature

of Paramesvara," for, Lord Siva had once taken the incarnation of

Sarabha, a creature with eight legs, capable of killing even the

lions.

 

357. Bheemah –"The All-inspiring, the Terrible," meaning, One who is

a mighty and terrible phenomena to those who are cruel and sensuous

in the world. To the bad, the Lord is always a frightful power of

vengeance, to follow them relentlessly as their doom.

 

Some commentators, due to the position of this word in the stanza,

read it as a-bheemah, meaning thereby, "He who is the shelter" to

those who are good.

 

358. Samayajnah –"Knower of all six systems of philosophy," or it can

mean "One who knows the exact time (samaya) for creation,

preservation and destruction." Or, it can also mean "One whose

worship (Yajna) is nothing more than keeping an equal vision of the

mind by the devotee" The great devotee Prahalada says, "to be equal

in all conditions, is the worship of Achyuta."

 

359. Havir-harih –"The receiver of all oblation." He is the Lord of

all Yajnas and as such, He is the One to whom the devotee offers his

oblations, and He is the One who receives them in all dedicated

activities. Bhagavat Geeta says, "I am indeed the enjoyer and also

the Lord of all sacrifices." The Lord is called Havis as He is

worshipped through oblation.

 

Some commentators recognise in this term two different names of the

Lord: `Havih' and `Harih'. In this case, the former term, `Havih'

means "He who is invoked by everyone who performs the Yajnas." The

term Harih means "One who loots away all Vaasanaas (Paapa)," and

consequently, "One who wipes away all expressions of Vaasanaas."

 

360. Sarva-lakshana-lakshanyah –"Known through all methods of

proofs," meaning "He is the One Self that is ultimately proved by all

scientific investigations and philosophical enquiries." Whether it be

through dualistic (dvaita) or through non-dualistic (advaita)

philosophy, the Ultimate Truth experienced by the realised seeker, is

this Great Vishnu.

 

361. Lakshmeevan –"The consort of Lakshmi." He is the Spirit

(Purusha) that thrills the entire world- of-matter (Prakriti). Matter

thrilled with the spirit is the dynamic world that we see around.

Thus, the manifested Lord is ever wedded to Lakshmi. Lakshmi also

means Effulgent, and therefore, the Lord who is Ever-effulgent,

meaning the Pure Consciousness, that illumines everything, is indeed

Lakshmeevan.

 

362. Samitinjayah –"Ever-Victorious." In the Puranas, we find the

Lord ultimately wins in His battle with the unrighteous forces. He is

the destroyer of all pains in the individuality of the devotees.

Samiti as a word, has got the meaning-"Battle".

 

Stanza 40

 

viksharo rohito maargo hetur daamodarah sahah

maheedharo mahaabhaago vegavaan-amitaasanah.

 

 

363. Viksharah -Ksharah means "decaying,that which is perishing",

and so Viksharah means "Imperishable". Those who are meditating upon

the Lord in His un-manifested State of Glory, this term is very often

used. All material things are conditioned by time and all objects

are, therefore, perishable. The Lord, the Self, is the Subject and

is, therefore, ever Unchanging and always Imperishable.

 

364. Rohitah -The term `Rohita' means fish, and this name has come to

indicate Lord Vishnu because of His first incarnation as the Fish.

When the entire world was submerged in the waters of the deluge, the

only living creatures that were available at that time could only be

fishes. Lord could incarnate at that time only in the form of the

Fish. Therefore, here the term means "One who had manifested to serve

the living creatures as the Fish among the fishes."

 

365. Maargah –"The Path." In order to realise the Highest which is

the Nameless and Formless, human mind will have to first hold on to a

divine form, and that is Lord Vishnu. He is the Way and the Goal. In

short, "He is the One whom seekers of the Highest meditate upon in

order to reach the Supreme."

 

366. Hetuh –"The Cause". One who is the cause for the whole universe.

He is at once the material-cause (Upaadaana Kaarana), the

instrumental-cause (Nimitta Kaarana) and He who alone is also the

efficient-cause in the creation of this universe. Hence, He is called

The Cause.

 

367. Daamodarah –This term has come to indicate the Lord because, He

is One who is known through a mind which is purified (Udara) by means

of self-control (dama) and such other qualities. According to

Mahabharata, "We call Him as Daamodara as He is known by means of

Dama."

 

Brahmapurana re-capitulates the incident in the early childhood of

the Lord when He was tied with a cord (daama) round His waste

(udara). This term can also mean "One in whose bosom rests the whole

universe."

 

368. Sahah –"All enduring". The Lord is One who has patience at

everything, and is One who readily forgives all the defaults of His

sincere devotees.

 

369. Maheedharah –"The Supporter or the Bearer of the Earth". Since

He is the very essence in the universe as its material-cause, He is

the One who supports all forms in the universe. The Lord supports the

world, just as gold `supports' the ornaments, the cotton `supports'

the cloth, the ocean `supports' the waves.

 

370. Mahaa-bhaagah -He who has extreme beauty in all His limbs, or He

who is ever fortunate, or fie who gets the greatest share (Bhaaga) in

every Yajna.

 

371. Vegavaan –"He who is swift"; One who is the fastest in reaching

the devotee the moment his loving heart remembers Him. By import it

means that He is All- pervading, therefore, He is the fastest,

inasmuch as "nothing can ever overtake Him."

 

In the Isavasyopanishad He is indicated as swifter than the mind-

(Manasojaveeyah).

 

372. Amitaasanah –"Of endless appetite." This should not be taken

literally, but it only means that the entire world of plurality

projected by the mind, merges back when the mind is transcended at

the time of the experience of the Self. Just as we can say that the

waker swallows the dreamer, the Higher Consciousness, with an

infinite appetite, as it were, swallows the Infinite Cosmos; hence

figuratively, He is considered as `the Great Consumer' of the whole

world of plurality during involution (Pralaya).

 

 

 

Stanza 41

 

udbhavah kshubhano devah sreegarbhah paramesvarah

karanam kaaranam kartaa vikartaa gahano guhah.

 

 

373 Udbhavah –"The Originator" The Lord is the material-cause from

which the entire universe arises and, therefore, He is the origin for

the Cosmos, or it can mean to indicate, "One who is again and again

born as the endless jivas under the urge of their individual

vaasanaas".

 

374 Kshobhanah –"The Agitator" If the Self were not in the

equipments, the equipments will not get agitated -will not pursue

their functions The Atman, the Pure Consciousness is that which

thrills and agitates both the matter (Prakriti) and energy (Purusha),

and causes the manifestation of the living entities (jives), who,

with their actions, constitute the dynamic aspect of the world. If

the Self is not there, there can be no movement or expression of

life; everything would have remained completely inert and insentient.

He is the Lord who thrills the world and makes it so beautifully

palpitating with life. Hence, He is called as the Agitator

(Kshobhanah).

 

375 Devah –"One who revels is Deva. This term `Deevyati' in Sanskrit

also means `to conquer', `to shine' and `to praise' Therefore, Lord

Vishnu is rightly called as Derah because He sports through His play-

the great Creation-Sustenance-Destruction-play, He functions in all

Beings as He shines as the Universal Consciousness; and He is praised

by all the devotees Svetasratara Upanishad indicates "there is only

one Deva".

 

376 Sree-garbhah -"Containing all glories within; One in whom are all

glories (Aisvarya)" The glory of the Lord is the universe and this

universe resides in Him, and therefore, all powers and glories that

are manifested in the universe are also ever in Him.

 

377. Paramesvarah -The Supreme (Parama) Lord (Isvara). The fanatics

generally interpret the word to mean as "the only Lord", in the sense

that all other concepts of God are wrong. The large-hearted, tolerant

Rishis of old, could have never meant such a meaning. It could only

mean "that He is the Supreme Consciousness whose expressions are all

the deities". The term Isvara indicates both might and glory.

Therefore, Paramesvara means "One who is Omnipotent and All-

glorious."

 

378. Karanam –"The Instrument." That which is most useful in

fulfilling any piece of work is called the tool or the instrument.

For the creation of the world He is the instrumental-cause (Nimitta

Kaarana).

 

379. Kaaranam –"The Cause." By the earlier term it was indicated that

He is the instrumental-cause (Nimi- tta Kaarana) for the whole

universe. Here now, by this term, it is indicated that He is the very

material-cause (Upaadaana Kaarana) of the universe. Since the term

directly means only "the cause", it can mean not only the material

cause, but also it can suggest the instrumental-cause. In the former

case it would mean "He from whom the whole universe arises", and in

the latter sense, the term is interpreted by some commentators as "He

who causes the universe to emerge out".

 

380. Kartaa –"The Doer". He is the One in whose presence alone all

activities are possible, and hence by a transferred epithet, though

the doings all belong to the equipments, the Self is called as

the "Doer". One who can freely perform all the functions of creation,

sustenance and destruction, is the "Doer".

 

381. Vi-kartaa –"One who creates the infinite varieties that

constitute the universe." It can also mean, "One who has created out

of Himself, the endless self-manifestations of incarnations."

 

382. Gahanah –"The Un-knowable". One who cannot be comprehended by

any of the known instruments of knowledge; One who is not an object

of perception, but is the very subject and the perceiver in all sense-

organs.

 

383. Guhah –"One who dwells in the cave of the heart" meaning "One

who is the very core of every living creature." He is concealed

within the equipments and hence, He is described in our Scriptures

as "One who dwells in the cave of the heart". The Smriti describes

Him as "This Lord, the Great Purusha, the Witness who dwells in the

cave most secretively." Mundakopanishad describes the Self

as `Nihitam Guhaayaam'. Again, the Lord Himself says, "I am not

readily perceivable by all as I am veiled by my own Maayaa ".

 

 

 

Stanza 42.

 

vyavasaayo vyavasthaanah samsthaanah sthaanado-dhruvah

pararddhih paramaspashtah-tushtah pushtah subhekshanah.

 

384. Vyavasaayah -"Resolute." Being of the nature of Pure Wisdom,

there is no vacillation in Him; all irresolution is at the level of

the doubting mind and the unprepared intellect. The

term `Vyavasaayah' also means "Yoga." In this sense, the term is used

in the Geeta, "The intellect of one who is practising Yoga is single-

pointed without vacillation." Again, in the same chapter criticising

those who are running after enjoyment and power, Krishna says, "those

who are revelling in sensuality and consequently disturbing the poise

of their intellect, cannot have a steady mind and consistent pursuit

of Yoga."

 

To work persistently until the Goal is reached is resolution. "To

steadily apply ourselves in continuously withdrawing ourselves from

our identifications with the not-Self, until we come to apprehend and

experience the Self", is Yoga. Hence, commentators

interpret `Vyavasaaya' as "Yoga."

 

385. Vyavasthaanah –"The Basis or the Substratum." The one who is the

very Substratum for the entire pluralistic world; the One who orders

the laws of the cosmos and administers those laws.

 

386. Samsthaanah –"The Ultimate Authority, State or Goal." He who

absorbs unto Himself all the multiplicities of names and forms during

the time of deluge. The One Source into which all perceptions,

emotions and thoughts retire and merge at the time of deep-sleep. In

short, it means "the One who integrates the plurality and absorbs it

all unto Himself when the projections are ended at that time of

transcendence.

 

387. Sthaanadah –"One who confers the right abode." Each living

organism, "according to his actions and thoughts" gathers to himself

vaasanaas and according to the vaasanaas, each individual takes his

birth. Thus, the One who gives (dada) the appropriate abode (sthaana)

to each individual (jeeva) is called Sthaanadah. In short, the Lord

is the distributor of the fruits-of-actions.

 

388. Dhruvah –"The stable; the Firm." That which remains "the

Changeless in the midst of changes", "that which is Imperishable in

the midst of all perishing". The body, the mind and the intellect and

the worlds interpreted by them are all variables and changeable. The

Consciousness, which illumines all of them and makes us aware of them

is, indeed, the "Changeless."

 

389. Pararddhih –"One who has Supreme Manifestations (Riddhi)". The

glory (vibhooti) of the Lord is expressed in His manifestations and

there manifestations are indeed divine as the Geeta thunders, "the

glories of the Self are indeed divine".

 

390. Parama-spashtah –"The extremely vivid." He who is extremely

clear to those who have conquered the agitations and all disturbing

thought-currents of the mind through a successful pursuit of the

practice of meditation. He being the very Self, nothing in fact is

so `clear', meaning, so self-evident, as the Pure Consciousness is in

us. No experience in the outer world or in our subjective bosom would

have been possible had it not been for the Light of the Self. Even

the sense of individuality in us is but an image of this Awareness,

which is the very Self in every living creature. It being thus the

Absolute Subjective essence. It is described as "the most Vivid."

 

391. Tushtah –"The ever-Contented," meaning "the One who is happy at

the minimum offering of a devotee.I accept even if you offer some

leaf or flower, or fruit or spoon of water, happily, if it is offered

in love," confesses Lord Krishna in the Geeta.

 

The Self being beyond body, mind and intellect, it cannot have any of

the sense of imperfections or incompleteness and as such, the All-

full Self must be at all times, complete in Himself. Naturally

therefore He is All-Blissful. Consequently, His Nature must ever be

Supreme contentment.

 

392. Pushtah –"One who is ever-full." The Supreme Consciousness being

All-pervading, He is Infinitely Full- nothing can we take out of It,

nor can we add to It. It is Ever- full and, therefore, even when the

manifestations emerge out from It, It is not less for it.

 

393. Subh-ekshanah –"All auspicious gaze." One whose very gaze brings

streams of auspiciousness to the devotee. The Self-being beyond

vaasanaas, one who realises the Self, goes beyond all sins. A devotee

walking the very path and moving towards the spiritual contents,

purifies himself from all sins, since he will be living a life not

identifying with his body, mind and intellect.

 

 

 

Stanza 43

 

raamo viraamo virajo maargo neyo nayo-anayah

veerah saktimataam-sreshthah dharmo dharmaviduttamah.

 

 

394. Raamah –"That which revels in every form or that in which all

Yogins in their meditation revel. In Padmapurana, it is clearly

defined, "in Him, who is Eternal Bliss, Pure Consciousness, and

Endless, the Yogins revel." Therefore, by the term `Raamah', the

Supreme Self is indicated. The term can also mean "One who has a

compelling charm about Himself. He who is the most Handsome."

 

395. Vi-raamah –"He in whom the creatures rest; The Abode of perfect

rest", having reached which, there is no return into the realms of

experiences. That state is called Viraamah. Some commentators

recognise in this term a meaning as, "He (Isvara) in whom the world

of plurality merges during the deluge."

 

396. Virajah –"Passionless.One who is not associated with the

agitations (Rajas) of the mind." The mind gets agitated when it

identifies with the sense-objects of the world outside. The Atman,

the Self, in its Pure Nature, has no such identifications, and,

therefore, He is recognised as `passionless.'

 

397. Maargah –"The path." There is no other way to know Him. For

complete liberation, there is no way other than realising the Self,

Sree Narayana.

 

398. Neyah –"The Guide", the "Conductor." He who guides and

ultimately takes the seeker to the Reality is Lord Narayana, the

Saguna Brahman. Through surrender to Narayana, the devotee develops

the integration within and when fully integrated, he becomes the

meditator and through meditation, the Highest is achieved. Therefore,

Vishnu is indicated here as the "Conductor."

 

The term can also mean "One who is fit to be conducted to the

Highest." The individual-ego .is that which tries to realise its own

real nature, the self. The very individuality (Jiva) who is fit to be

led towards the gateway to the Higher Consciousness is the One that

has removed its false attachments and is held in animated joy, in

meditation. In essence, such a jiva is nothing other than the

Supreme, and, therefore, the Supreme is thus called as the Jiva.

 

399. Nayah –"One who leads." When such a true devotee slowly and

steadily gains his detachments from the outer world he moves himself

more and more into the Higher and Subtler states of Consciousness.

The one who leads such a seeker is again the grace of the same Self-

Atmabala.

 

400. A-nayah -If the ego is led by the Lord (as Naya) to the Highest,

then when once the Supreme State is reached, It has none to lead or

guide It. The Lord guides all, but there is none to guide Him. This

is because He is All- pervading and, therefore, He needs no guide to

lead Him to Himself, as He is everywhere at all times.

 

401. Veerah –"The Valiant." One who, by His prowess; creates the fear

in the minds of the Rakshasas.

 

402. Saktimataam-sreshthah –"The best among those who have power."

All powers that are available, have been classified under three

types: the power-of -Knowledge (Jnaana-Sakti), the power-of-Desire

(Icchaa-Sakti) and the power-of-Action (Kriyaa-Sakti). All these

powers are expression of the Self in the intellect, in the sub-

conscious mind and in the physical body, respectively. Naturally the

Self is the best among all other kinds of powers inasmuch as, all

powers are expressions of this Great Self.

 

403. Dharmah -This term is used in Hinduism in thousands of different

shades that, to the early student, the meaning of this term is lost

in confusion. Dharma of a thing is that because of which the thing

is, without which the thing is not." This term, Dharma, has,

therefore, been translated as "the Law of Being" -the Dharma of the

Sun is light; the Dharma of the Fire is heat, the Dharma of Sugar is

sweetness. What then is the Dharma of the individual? The essential

Dharma of the individual can only be the self, because, without which

is the individual cannot exist, and the individual's expressions,

physical mental and intellectual, are all expressions of the self

through the equipment in Him. Thus "Dharma" means the only self in

all individuals.

 

This is essential Dharma in anything is that which supports the

things and, therefore, the self which is essence everywhere, is

considered as the very one which supports everything.

 

404. Dharma-vid-uttamah –"One who is the highest among men of

realisation." All those who know the Reality are knower among all

knowers of the self.

 

 

 

Stanza 44

 

vasikunthah purushah praanah praanadah pranavah prithuh

hiranyagarbhah satrughno vyaapto vaayuradhokshajah.

 

 

405. Vaikunthah –"One who prevents men from going astray into wrong

paths (Vikunthah)." In Mahabharatha it is mentioned, "I united the

Earth with Water, Space with Air with Fire, hence, the

name `Vaikunthah' has come to Me.

 

406. Purushah –"One who dwells in all bodies (Puris)." In

Brihadaranyaka Upanishad (3-4-1) it is said, "because He as the first

(Poorva) of all of them consumed (Aushad) by fire all sins,

therefore, He is called Purushah." In short, He is the One Self which

thrills all living creatures everywhere at all times.

 

407. Paanah –"One who is the form of `Praana' exits in the body,

propels all sense organs to act in their appointed fields, it is the

Lord Vishnu that activates the body as the 5 praanas, is found in the

Vishnupurana. As Praana, He causes movements.

 

408. Praanadah –this can mean "One who gives `Praana' or as one who

takes away `Praana', because, the root `da' has both the

meanings, `to give' and to break.' Therefore, Vishnu is the supreme

who gives Praana to all creatures in the beginning of the creation,

and He alone is again the one who destroys all the Praanaas

(movements) at the time of the dissolution.

 

409. Pranavah –"That which is praised or adorned by even the gods."

There is a declaration of Sanatkumara, "because it is being

worshipped and adorned by the gods, the self is called as Pranavah.

This great reality is indicated in Vedas by the symbol Om and,

therefore `Omkaara' is called as Pranava. Thus the supreme

self, `Omkaara' is Vishnu.

 

410. Prithuh –"The expanded." He whose expanse is expressed as the

world of infinite forms. In short, "He who All-pervasive." Looking at

the world, through Puranas, it suggests, "the one who is born as the

king Prithuh, the son of the king vena –for bringing prosperity to

the country, is Lord Narayana."

 

411. Hiranyagarbhah –it is the term used in the Vedanta for

the "creator". He is the expression of the creative urge of the lord

Narayana. "The Golden-egg" means here that from which all the

objective world had emerged out, indicating the creator." The term

thereby suggest that the entire creative power of the creator is but

the expression of the Self, Narayana.

 

412. Satru-ghnah –"the destroyer off he enemies." The lord is the one

who annihilates all the enemies of the gods, meaning, He is the one

who destroys all the negative tendencies in all serious seekers

totally devoted to Him.

 

413. Vyaaptah –"The Pervader." The effects can never remain without

the Cause; the Cause is concurrent and inherent in it, effects. And

thus, the world that has risen from the Infinite, should be pervaded

by the Infinite. He who thus pervades everything is Narayana.

 

414. Vaayuh –"One who in the form of the atmospheric air, sustains

all life everywhere." He is not the air, but He is the life-giving

rower in the air.

 

415. Adhokshajah -Mahabharata says, "at no time My vitality flows

downwards, and hence, I am called, Adhokshajah'. The term can also

mean, "One who is not available for the powers of the sense organs to

perceive." Or, it can also mean, "He who remains under both the

atmosphere and the earth as the Supporter of the entire universe."

 

Stanza 45

 

rituh sudarsanah kaalah parameshthee parigrahah

ugrah samvatsaro daksho visraamo visva-dakshinah.

 

 

416. Rituh –"Seasons"-Here it means. the Lord of Time, who governs

the seasons.

 

417. Sudarsanah -"One who is easy to be perceived if the seeker has

sufficient devotion," or "He whose meeting is auspicious inasmuch as

it removes the seeker's worldly worries."

 

418. Kaalah –"One who measures the merits and defects in each

individual, and who doles out the appropriate results." Bhagavat

Geeta says, "I am the Time of counting." Kaalah is also the name of

Lord Death, and in this sense, it can mean "the Lord, who is Death or

Annihilation- personified to all His enemies."

 

419 Parameshthee –"One who is centred in His own infinite glory." Or,

it can also mean "One who is readily available for experience in the

Supreme cave of the heart."

 

420 Parigrahah –"The Receiver" He who receives from His devotees even

insignificant things as a leaf or a flower, with all satisfaction"

Some commentators stretch the suggestion of the word and find a

meaning in this term as "One who has been accepted as the Sole Refuge

by all devotees."

 

421. Ugrah –"The Terrible." The One who gives fear to those who are

diabolically evil", or, as the Upanishad declares, "For fear of Him

the fire burns; for fear of Him shines the sun; For fear of Him

Indra, Vaayu and Death proceed with their respective functions,"-

therefore He is the Terrible

 

422. Samvatsarah –"The Year," which is the abode of all living

creatures. Time is spread in which creatures exist and gather their

experiences.

 

423 Dakshah –"The Smart" One who undertakes the creation, sustenance

and destruction of the Whole Cosmos with ease and efficiency,

diligence and promptitude,

 

424. Visraamah –"The resting place;the Quiet." That State wherein

people who suffer in Samsar, can discover a perfect rest and quietude

is the consciousness Supreme, Sree Narayana.

 

425. Visva-dakshinah –"The most skilful and efficient." All

efficiency and skill that we find in the universe among the dynamic

living creatures are all His expressions alone, and, therefore, He is

the source of all skill and efficiency. Again, He is the One who is

the very Creator and Preserver of the whole universe and He must be

the most efficient Manager and Administrator among the living

creatures.

 

 

 

Stanza 46

 

vistaarah sthaavarah sthaanuh pramaanam beejamavyayam

artho anartho mahaakoso mahaabhogo mahaadhanah.

 

 

426. Vistaarah -The extension. The Lord is named thus because in the

time of Pralaya, in Him the entire universe of names and forms comes

to reside with ample accommodation for all of them. The term

Vistaarah can also mean "manifestation;" since the Lord manifests in

Himself all the universe.

 

427. Sthaavarah-sthaanuh –"The firm and the motionless." The Firm

(achanchala) indicates that He has no movements, because He is All-

pervading. Sthaanuh (motionless) means that He is fixed like "the

pillars that denote the frontiers of a country" (Sthaanuh) .The terms

here used are as one- word because the Lord is both these at one and

the same time. He is not only All-pervading, and, therefore, no

movements in Him (Sthaavarah), but he is also without any locomotion

(Sthaanuh). Both these terms indicate the All-pervasiveness of Lord

Vishnu.

 

428. Pramaanam -The proof. He is the underlying principle of all

intellectual arguments and for all scientific methodology, since He

is the very Consciousness behind all discussions. Lord Narayana is

the very authority behind all Dharmas and hence He becomes the

essential Reality behind all (pramaana).

 

429. Beejamavyayam –"The Immutable Seed." Since the whole world has

sprung from Him, He is the indestructible and changeless cause of the

world. It can also mean "that without which the world can never be."

Hence He is the undecaying root of all things.

 

430. Arthah -One who is worshipped by all; invoked by everyone. Lord

Narayana is desired by all as He is the Paramaatman who is of the

nature of bliss. Even the sensuous man running after the sense-

objects is seeking the Lord in as much as he is searching for bliss

which is the nature of the Self.

 

431. Anarthah -One to whom there is nothing that is yet to be

fulfilled. This means one who has no desires, as He has fulfilled all

His desires. So long as vaasanaas exist desires manifest. Where

vaasanaas have ended there cannot be any desires and that state is

the State of Self-realization.

 

432. Mahaakosah -One who has got around him great sheaths. The Self

in us functions through the five- sheaths such as the food-sheath,

etc. Sri Narayana is one who, as the Lord of the universe

(Jagadeesvarah), is conditioned by the macrocosmic sheaths of the

universe, and therefore, the great Isvara is here indicated as

Mahaakosah.

 

433. Mahaabhogah -One who is of the nature of enjoyment (bhogah), He

being of the nature of bliss. Also He is the one from whom the

greatest bliss (bhogah) can be gained by the seekers. In short, the

term indicates Him as one who gives the greatest happiness to all

those who are devoted to Him.

 

434. Mahaadhanah -One who is supremely rich with the wealth of bliss

which he can give to His devotees. Vishnu is one from whom His

devotees gain great wealth.

 

 

 

Stanza 47

 

anirvinnah sthavishtho-abhoordharma-yoopo mahaa-makhah

nakshatranemir nakshatree kshamah kshaamahsameehanah.

 

 

435. Anirvinnah -One who has no nirveda. This term nirveda means "the

sense of disinterestedness that comes to the bosom of one who could

not fulfil his passionate desires in life." The Lord is one who is

griefless as He has no desires to fulfil. In His fullness and

perfection, He has no more any desires to fulfil, and therefore, Sri

Hari has no occasion to suffer from the sense of nirveda.

 

436 Sthavishthah –One who is supremely gross. The entire cosmos being

His form. He Himself is the universe, and as such in His total

manifestation, He is supremely gross, Geeta says (Chapter XI-20) that

the Lord spreads Himself covering the whole world and the atmosphere

The Upanishad (Mundaka 1-4) also says how "the sky form' His head,

the sun and the moon are His eyes."

 

437. A-bhooh -One who has no birth, or the one, baying realised whom,

the seeker will no more have births Some people dissolve the line

Sthavishthah + Bhooh. In that case instead of A-bhooh they give the

Lord the name, `Bhooh', meaning `earth.' Just as the earth is the

stage upon which the entire drama of life is being played, Sri

Narayana is the substratum upon which the entire world of experiences

is playing about.

 

438. Dharma-yoopah -Yoopah is the name given to the post to which the

sacrificial animal is tied in a yaaga The Lord is the very Post to

which all Dharmas (righteousness) ace tied to This means He is the

very essence behind all righteousness.

 

439. Mahaa-makhah -The Great Sacrificer. Because the sacrifices

dedicated to Him confer total liberation -(Nirvaana). Also in the

Geeta we were told, "offer is Brahman, what is offered is Brahman,

the fire is Brahman, the offerer is Brahman and the goal reached is

also Brahman."

 

440. Nakshatranemih -The Nave of the stars. One who is the nave

around which all the star and the planets including the sun, moon and

other planets always move around. For this brilliant glowing wheel of

Light, Sri Narayana is the very Axle

 

441. Nakshatree -One who is the Lord of the stars. Lord of the stars

is the moon. Geeta says, "among the stars I am the moon."

 

442. Kshamah -One who is supremely efficient in all undertakings. One

who has extreme patience with all the stupidities of his devotees.

 

443. Kshaamah -One who ever remains without any scarcity- (kshaama).

During the final deluge all things in the world dissolve and perish

away but even then the Lord remains untouched by all distinction and

hence He is called kshaamah.

 

444. Sameehanah -One whose desires are suspicious. The Lord is

considered as "Well-desiring" in as much as he desires the well-being

of all His creatures at all times. He knows how to control and

regulate His power of desiring (Icchaa-sakti) and thus He is

extremely efficient in His creative activity.

 

 

 

Stanza 48

 

yajnah ijyo mahejyashcha kratuh satram sataam gatih

sarvadarshee vimuktaatmaa sarvajno jnaanamuttamam.

 

 

445. Yajnah -One who is of the nature of yajna. All sacrifices are

His own forms. He exists as sacrifice in order to satisfy men and

gods. Sruti says that all yajnas are of the nature of Vishnu (Yajno

Vai Vishnuh).

 

446. Ijyah -One who is fit to be invoked through yajnas. Lord

Narayana is the only one who is being invoked in all yajnas, even

when the devotee particularly invokes any other deity. He, being the

Infinite, all gods are expressions of His own glory and therefore,

irrespective of the deity invoked, all yajnas are worship of Vishnu.

In Harivamsa we read a declaration which openly reveals this

truth: "They who worship through holy sacrifices, the devas or the

pitris, they worship indeed the Vishnu, the Self, through the Self."

 

447. Mahejyah -One who is to be most worshipped. One who most

certainly is to be invoked in every ritual because all other devataas

invoked during the yajnas can each fulfil the seeker's desires; but

to invoke Sri Narayana is to invoke the only Power that can supply

complete liberation for the devotee. Therefore, He is the object of

great sacrifice.

 

448. Kratuh -It is a kind of yaaga wherein there is a pillar to

which the sacrificial animal is tied. Since all sacrifices are

offered to Him-the Lord, even Kratuh, a sacrifice with violence

inherent in it is also Vishnu.

 

449. Satram -The Lord who protects the good (Sat). In continuation

with the previous Kratuh, when we read this it can also be considered

as indicating a particular kind of yajna described as Satram in our

Vedic literature.

 

450. Sataam gatih -One who is the refuge (for the good people). One

who is worshipped and invoked by those who wish to liberate

themselves from all limitations in life. Gatih in Sanskrit means both

the path and the goal. Thus, through surrendering to the Narayana

alone does one reach Sri Narayana.

 

451. Sarvadarshee –"As He is the pure Consciousness in all living

creatures, all knowledge in all beings is illumined by Him. Just as

the sun is "the eye of the universe," so the Consciousness is the

Illuminator of every- thing.

 

452. Vimuktaatmaa –"The ever-liberated Self." The Supreme, though He

expresses Himself through the equipments, He is never conditioned by

the matter envelopments through which He apparently expresses

Himself. Just as the waves rise, exist and dissolve in the ocean, the

equipments of experiences rise, play and dissolve themselves in Him.

 

He is ever-liberated, never-shackled by gross matter. This great

principle of Paraatmaa is Sri Narayana. -Sruti says (Kathopanishad 5-

1).

 

453. Sarvajnah –"Omniscient." He is the Principle of Consciousness

and, therefore, He is the Illuminator of all thoughts, all

intentions, motives, emotions and all sense perceptions in an

individual. The meaning is the same as in Sarvadarsee.

 

454. Jnaanamuttamam –"The Supreme Knowledge of all other knowledges."

The Self is the Supreme Knowledge, for, without the Consciousness, no

knowledge is possible. Taittireeyopanishad indicates the Self

as. "Satyam Jnaanam, Anantam Brahma"

 

 

 

Stanza 49

 

suvratah sumukhah sookshmah sughoshah sukhadah suhrit

manoharo jita-krodho veerabaahurvidaaranah.

 

 

455. Suvratah –"The one who is ever performing the pure vow." It is a

sacred vow of the Lord that He has to give shelter and protection to

all those who totally surrender themselves into him-says Sri

Ramachandraji: "To give shelter to all living creatures-this is my

vow." This term can also refer to Him who had done tapas for a long

number of years on the mount of Nara-Narayana in Badrinath.

 

456. Sumukhah -One who has an enchanting face. Truth is beauty and

Beauty truth. In all conditions the Lord is ever cheerful and brings

to His face the dignified beauty of calm repose. When the devotees

come and surrender at His sacred feet Narayana is the one of Infinite

mercy who beams with joy at the devotion of the surrender.

 

457. Sookshmah -One who is subtler than the subtlest. In Vedanta

terminology subtlety indicates pervasiveness. Therefore, the term

means All-Pervasive. The Upanishad says the Lord is All-Pervading,

subtler than the subtlest (Sarvagatam susookshmam).

 

458. Sughoshah –"Of auspicious sound." This is the name of the conch

that Krishna blew in the opening of the Mahabharata war. The sound of

Vishnu is the essence of all Vedas as all the four Vedas have come

from Him, the Supreme. Hence the term "of auspicious sound."

 

459. Sukhadah –"One who confers happiness." It can also mean in

Sanskrit one who is the destroyer of joy (Da-to destroy). Here, of

course, it means that One who gives joy to His devotees and takes

away joy from those who are undivine.

 

460. Suhrit –"The friend of all living creatures." A true friend is

one who gives all that he possesses without expecting any return.

 

461. Manoharah -One who is the looter of the mind; or charming. Not

only is the Lord Beauty Incarnate, but He compels the attention of

the devotee to come away from all other sense objects to dwell upon

His enchanting form. Thus Vishnu is one who generates an irresistible

joy in the mind of His devotees and compels them to spend their time

in constant worship.

 

462. Jita-krodhah -One who has conquered anger. By the one term here,

anger, we should consider all the six inner enemies Kaama, Krodha,

Lobha, Moha, Mada and Maatsarya. These six constitute the types of

thoughts in man; the six categories into which all his mental

activities fall. One who has conquered all these means one who is

beyond the mind-the Self.

 

463. Veerabaahuh -One having mighty, valiant arms. From time to time

He has to incarnate in order to put down the wicked and thereby

protect the good.

 

464. Vidaaranah -One who splits asunder; destroys. In the man-lion

form, Narasimha, Lord Vishnu appears to tear open and kill

Hiranyakasipu. Again, in order to destroy Hiranyaaksha and to lift

the earth from the ocean, Sri Narayana had to take the form of the

great boar (Varaaha). Accordingly in the Sanskrit vocabulary, bhoo-

daarah is a synonym for boar (Varaaha). Dara means to split or to

tear open. Thus the meaning of the divine Boar can be squeezed out

from the term Vidaaranah used here.

 

 

 

Stanza 50

 

svaapanah svavaso vyaapee naikaatmaa naikakarmakrit

vatsaro vatsalo vatsee ratnagarbho dhanesvarah.

 

 

465. Svaapanah –One who puts people to sleep; stupefying. Lord Vishnu

as Isvara has for Himself the total Vaasanaa (Maayaa) as an equipment

for His self-expression as Eesvara (Narayana). He, through His

Maayaa, veils each individual and renders them ignorant of their own

divine nature. This "veiling-power" (Aavarana Sakti) creates many

agitations (Vikshepa), due to which individuals rush out for sense-

gratification. Since Isvara, thus, with His Maayaa-power deludes

everybody, He gathers to Himself this epithet Svaapanah meaning "the

mighty stupefying force."

 

466. Svavasah - The One who has everything under His own personal

control; the totally independent. Since He is the Supreme

Consciousness, all living creatures and phenomenal powers are

functioning by His grace, drawing their capacities to exist and act

from Him only. If He withdraws His patronage everything in this

Universe must stop functioning immediately. He is supremely

independent inasmuch as, though the world-of-objects needs Him, He is

entirely self-sufficient and needs no world for His Existence. Thus

He is totally free. The waves need the ocean, but the ocean is

totally independent of the waves' existence.

 

467. Vyaapee -All-pervading. Pervasiveness in philosophy indicates

subtlety. Thus All-pervading means that which is "subtler than the

subtlest." This concept is again sustained by the physical

observations in the world. The cause always pervades all the effects;

the gold pervades all ornaments. The entire universe is an effect and

He being the Cause, He pervades all and everything at all times. Thus

the All-pervading, in its suggestion, indicates that He is the

Ultimate-cause and Himself in His pervasiveness is ever-present

everywhere and in everything, presiding over all behaviours, actions

and work, everywhere in the universe.

 

468. Naikaatmaa -Many-souled. Lord, the Infinite, though ever the

one, expresses Himself as the many, while manifesting Himself, in the

form of the universe. It is He, the One Great Consciousness, that

expresses Himself as the creator, sustainer and destroyer-in order to

maintain the play of the eternal dance, among the phenomenal things

and deeds. He who becomes the Trinity is the great Vishnu Tattva.

 

469. Naika-karma-krit -The one does many actions, as He is the one

Lord of all evolution, preservation, and involation of the universe.

where he is not presiding over, no activity can ever take place.

 

470. Vatsarah -The Abode of the Lord. Not only Lord is living in each

one of us our inner-Soul (Antaryaamee) but He is at once, the All-

prevading Essence in which, the entire universe exists, and as such,

He alone is the Abode of the creatures, He is the endless `time' and

the infinite `space' at once. for, in the time-space field alone do

things exist. the term "Vatsa," in sanskrit also means "calf." the

world under discussion, therefore, can also mean "one who gives away

claves." this has reference to krishna who returned to Gopas all the

calves, when they were taken away by the enemy.

 

471. Vatsalah -The supremely affectionate. One who loves his devotees

extremely. Narayana is one who has got more affection towards his

devotees that all the paternal and maternal love in the world put

together. Supreme love is the meaning of the world `Vatsalah;' Lord

Narayana is Love Incarnate.

 

472. Vatsee -The Father. One who has infinite number of children;

Lord considers the entire living kingdom as His own children; and

nurses and nourishes them. It can also be interpreted as one who

trains and protects the calves in the herd.

 

473. Ratnagarbhah -The Jewel-wombed. Like the ocean, One who has rich

wealth concealed in Himself.

 

On the whole, the term Ratna-garbhah only means that the Lord is

quick in His bestowing all the desired objects on His devotees.

 

474. Dhanesvarah -The Lord of wealth. Here the term "Wealth" means

all the good things in the universe- all objects of happiness. He is

described in the Puranas as the Lord of the Goddess Lakshmi

(Lakshmipati) and as such He is ever the Master-of-all-wealth. The

greatest of wealth is, of course, the liberation, and Lord Narayana

is the Isvara of this great wealth, He blesses the true devotees with

the experience of complete liberation from the entanglements and

sorrows of the vestures of matter around us.

 

 

 

Stanza 51

 

dharmagub dharmakrit dharmee sadasatksharamaksharam

avijnaataa sahasraamsur vidhaataa kritalakshanah.

 

 

475. Dharmagup -One who protects the Dharma. In the Bhagavad Geeta

the Lord says: "In every cycle I shall manifest for re-establishing

Dharma."

 

476. Dharma-krit -One who acts Dharma. Though He, as the Absolute

Consciousness that illuminates everything, is beyond all Dharma and

Adharma, Sri Narayana exemplifies what is the righteousness by His

own conduct. He is, therefore, called as Dharma-Pravartaka. In the

various incarnations, the Lord has exemplified how the generation

should live under the ever-changing kaleidoscopic pattern of

circumstances that play around us at all times.

 

477. Dharmee -The Supporter of Dharma; meaning the very Seat of all

Dharma. Just as the waves exist in the ocean; just as the cotton

supports the cloth; just as all the ornaments exist in gold-so Sri

Narayana, the Infinite Truth is the very essence and support of the

entire universe. Narayana is the Throne at which all righteousness

take their refuge. Without direct reference to Him and His Glory,

righteousness has no meaning; just as law books of a country are

empty pages when the Government falls.

 

478. Sat -The Existence in all things and beings is the same ever,

and it is All-pervading. The sun exists; the space between the sun

and the earth exists; the ocean and the creatures therein exist; the

physiological organs and their functions, mind and its activities,

the intellect and its agitations -all exist. This Ever-present

Principle of Existence is Sri Narayana. That which remains the same

without any change in and through all changes, unaffected ever, same

in the past, present and the future is called in Vedanta as `Satya.'

One who has all these natures is called Sat-Purusha. In the

Upanishads, the Supreme Brahman is indicated as `Satya' –"This, O

Child, indeed was Sat." In the Geeta while describing the Changeless

Factor behind the eternally changing matter, Bhagavan says: "That

which is the All-pervading in this world, that alone is

indestructible and no one can destroy it."

 

479. A-Sat -The Conditioned; Limited; the One who appears at this

moment as the limited, conditioned, and therefore confined only to

the world of plurality. That which actually is not, but apparently

seems to be there, is called a delusion and this is indicated by the

word " A-Sat." In the Vedantic terminology, higher-Self (Param) is

ever Immutable and Eternal, while the lower-Self (A-param)

constituted of all the universe of manifested things and beings, is

mutable and ephemeral. Sri Narayana Himself is, in His Apara nature,

expressing as the world of the many that we today recognise around

us. Bhagavan Sri Krishna confesses to Arjuna in the Bhagavad

Geeta: "Arjuna, I am at once immortality and mortality. I am both

existence and non-existence."

 

480. Ksharam -The Perishing. One who is the very Immutable Self in

all things, that appears to suffer from constant mutation: The

changeless-core in the midst of all the changes. All the changeable

and variable things and beings of the Universe play in Him who is the

only Substratum and, therefore, the Immutable Eternal Reality is

called here as the Mutable; the changing and the dying waves are all

ever nothing but the changeless ocean indeed.

 

481. A-ksharam -Imperishable. In order to recognize the change, there

must be a changeless entity knowing it. If one ornament is to become

another, there must be indeed the changeless consistent gold

permanently supporting it all the time. In the same way, there must

be a Changeless Factor which must be the essential core, that holds

together the pattern of the constant changes, which together

constitute the play of the universe. This Changeless Factor is called

Narayana. Krishna says in Bhagavat Geeta: "all creatures together

constitute the Kshara-purusha and the Changeless in an creatures is

the A-kshara-purusha."

 

482. Avijnaataa -The Non-knower. Here we must carefully understand

the term `knower.' The "knower" of the emotions and thoughts is the

Self, imprisoned in the body, mind and the intellect, and, therefore,

functioning as the perceiver, feeler, thinker-called in the Vedanta

Sastra as the "Jeeva," This individualised personality is the `doer'

and the `enjoyer', in the calamitous world of activities. Sri

Narayana is the Pure-Self, who has not been contaminated by the

matter- vestures and their agitated-nature, and the consequent

sorrows. Therefore, `Vishnu,' the Pure-Self, is indicated here as Non-

Knower (A-vijnaataa), meaning the "Jeeva."

 

483. Sahasra-amsuh -The thousand-rayed. As the Pure Consciousness, He

is effulgent, and in the Upanishads we read that even the sun, moon

and stars gain their effulgence from Him alone. In fact the

Upanishads conclude that all living creatures are resplendent after

His effulgence alone. Or, we can say that it means Sri Narayana, in

the form of the Sun, illumines and nourishes the world of living

creatures; because the name of the Sun in Sanskrit is `Sahasraamsuh.'

In praising the Lord Sun it is usual to sing of him

as `Sooryanaaraayana.'

 

484. Vidhaataa -All-supporter .As the final sub- stratum for

everything, the Lord supports the entire universe of living

creatures, and nobody supports Him, He alone is His own support. The

Lord is at once the material, instrumental and the efficient causes

for the universe of forms.

 

485. Krita-lakshanah -One who is famous because of six qualities,

such as glory, righteousness, fame, wealth, knowledge and detachment.

Again following the Puranic literature, Sri Narayana is the one who

made on His own bosom the great mark of the feet of Maharshi Bhrigu.

In fact from the standpoint of pure Vedanta, the term indicates the

Ever-existing Pure Consciousness which is the very goal (Lakshana) to

be ultimately achieved for liberation. Lakshana also means the

scriptural textbooks and, therefore, the term also can mean He who is

the author (Krita) of the Scriptures (Lakshana).

 

 

 

Stanza 52

 

gabhastinemih sattvasthah simho bhootamahesvarah

aadidevo mahaadevo deveso devabhrit guruh.

 

 

486. Gabhastinemih -The Centre of the Supreme planetary system. The

Sanskrit term `Gabhasti' means `rays', and the term `nemih' means

the `spokes.' Therefore, the term indicates "One who is the hub of

the wheel-of-light in which the spokes are His own rays of

brilliancy." Astronomically, we can consider this as the sun, the

centre of the planetary system. Subjectively, He is the Atman, the

Self-the Effulgent Consciousness-beaming out Himself to the whirls of

matter (the five koshas).

 

487. Sattvasthah -Abiding in Sattva. Maayaa is constituted of the

three gunas: unactivity (sattva), activity (rajas) and inactivity

(tamas). When the Maayaa is predominantly constituted of Sattva, it

becomes the vehicle for the Supreme Brahman to express as God, Sri

Narayana. The Lord is essentially constituted of the "Sattva Guna"

and, therefore, He is pure truthfulness in nature (Suddha Satya

Svaroopa). It can also mean that He who remains (Stha) in all beings

(Sattva).

 

488. Simhah –The Lion Due to His great exploits in fighting the

negative forces during His various incarnations, He is indicated as

the Lion among beings in the universe Also in Sanskrit "any part of a

name can indicate the full name" Thus Bheema means `Bheema Sena'

or `Bhaamaa' means `Satya-Bhaamaa' Similarly, `Simha' here might mean

a part of the Lord's name as `Narasimha'; Narayana had taken the form

of the Man-Lion in order to end the tyranny of Hiranyakasipu, and

bless his God-devoted son Prahlaada

 

489. Bhoota-Mahevarah -The Great Lord of Beings One who is the Lord

who orders, commands, regulates and presides over all activities of

all living creatures, and hence is ever the Ruler of All creature.

 

490. Aadidevah -The first Deity. Or it can also mean as one who is

First (Aadi) and one who is resplendent (Deva); further we can also

take it to mean that He is the First Deva, meaning, He is the God of

all gods. The term `Aadi' also means "one who eats;" the term' Deva'

can mean `one who evolves': thus the term can mean "one who evolves

in eating up," by consuming the names and forms. This implies that to

the extent one withdraws himself from his false occupations with the

perceived names and forms, he moves deeper and deeper into the

experiences of the divine Lord in himself; with this idea in mind,

Lord is described by this term, "One who evolves in consuming the

names and forms."

 

491. Mahaadevah -The Great Deity, He is the Source of all

Consciousness, and from Him have risen all further deities and

beings, therefore, it is right to consider Him as the Supreme Lord.

 

492. Devesah -The Lord of all Devas. He is the very Consciousness in

the gods themselves; therefore, in His unquestionable prominence, He

is addressed here as "God of all gods."

 

493. Deva-bhrid-guruh –"One who is the king of gods"-Indra -(Deva

Bhrit) and one who is the teacher (Guruh). In short, He is the

protector and advisor of the very Indra, who is the king of gods.

 

 

 

Stanza 53

 

uttaro gopatirgoptaa jnaanagamyah puraatanah

sareera bhootabhritbhoktaa kapeendro bhooridakshinah.

 

 

494. Uttarah -One who helps to lift us from (Uttarah) the ocean of

Samsar. It also conveys the most excellent meaning of "One who is

greater and nobler than all other deities." Rigveda declares: "He is

the most excellent of all."

 

495. Gopatih -The shepherd-As one who played the part of a cowherd in

His Krishna-incarnation. The term `Go' in Sanskrit has got four

meanings: the cattle, the earth, the speech and the vedas. In all

these meanings He is the Lord (Pati): Lord of the cattle; Lord of

Earth; Lord of speech; the Lord about whom all the Vedas speak of as

the very Goal.

 

496. Goptaa -The protector He is the Protector of all living

creatures in as much as, if He were not there, the creatures could

not exist He is the very Existence in the living Kingdom.

 

497. Jnaanagamyah -The One who is to be attained only through the

subtle perception of Jnaana He is not attained either by actions, or

by progeny or by wealth Only through a ("JnaanaPrasaadena")

pure `knowledge' alone He is experienced Here the word knowledge does

not mean the ordinary knowledge-of-thing. The experience of Truth is

gained only on transcending the intellect. Thus crossing the barriers

of the non-apprehension (Avidyaa) the meditator comes to apprehend

the Reality; this subjective first-hand apprehension is called True

Knowledge (Jnaana); by this one process alone can one attain the

Infinite; hence this term.

 

498. Puraatanah -He who was even before Time. That from which even

the concept-of- Time itself rose up is the Infinite Truth and.

therefore. Truth cannot be measured in terms of Time. Therefore, he

is called the Ancient, for, he transcends Time.

 

499. Sareera-bhoota-bhrit -One who nurses and nourishes the very

element from which the bodies are constituted. The Lord is the

controller of the very five elements.

 

500. Bhoktaa -The Enjoyer or the Protector. The term " Bhoktaa" can

be dissolved in two ways. In (a) it would mean the `Protector' and in

(b) it would mean as the `Enjoyer'. According to Vedanta, Lord in His

transcendental glory, as the Atman, is neither the `Doer' nor

the `Enjoyer' and yet, here, the Lord is taken as the `Enjoyer' only

in the sense that the experiencer `ego,' the Jeeva, is also nothing

other than the Supreme in Its final Essence.

 

501. Kapeendrah -One who is the Lord of the Monkeys-Sri

Ramachandraji. ` Kapih' also can mean the Boar-incarnation (Varaaha).

 

502. Bhoori-dakshinah -He who gives away large gifts (Dakshinaa), as

presents distributed at the end of the Sacrifices. When the body,

mind and the intellect of man make sacrifices, man does Karmas. Lord

Narayana is the One who gives the results for all actions: (Karma

Phala Daataa); hence this term to indicate the Lord.

 

 

 

Stanza 54

 

somapo-amritapah somah purujit purusattamah

vinayo jayah satyasandho daasaarhah saatvataam patih.

 

 

503. Somapah -One who drinks the Soma-juice in the Yajnas, in the

form of the deity that has been invoked by the householder. In short,

Narayana is the Lord that receives all the offerings, in all rituals,

which we may offer, because He is the One invoked, who plays as the

various hierarchy of deties.

 

504. Amritapah -One who drinks the nectar. As the Infinite Truth He

at all times enjoys the blissful immortality (Amritatvam). Also, it

may have the echo of the puranic story of the churning of the Ocean-

of-milk (Ksheeraabdhi) until they got the Nectar, which was

confiscated by the Asuras, and when they ran away, it was Sri

Narayana, who, in the form of the irresistible Mohinee, a beautiful

enchanting damsel, recovered the Nectar from them and distributed it

to the gods. He had partaken the Nectar along with the gods.

 

505. Somah -One who in the form of the moon- light (Soma) nourishes

all the plant-kingdom with their respective essential sap. It is very

well known in the Hindu literature that the moonlight is that which

enriches the food value in the fruits and grains. In the Geeta,

Bhagavan says: "I in the form of the moon-light, enrich all the plant-

kingdom," The term can also mean Siva, in which case it would mean

as "One who is ever consorted by Umaa."

 

506. Purujit -One who has won over numerous enemies. The word Puru

means `many'.

 

507. Puru-sattamah -One who is Greater among the great. Here the word

Puru means `great'. In some readings we find instead of this

term "Puru-sattamah" the term "Purushottamah" is used, in which case

the meaning is the Omnipresent (Purusha) and the Best (Uttamah)-the

Absolute Reality.

 

508. Vinayah -In direct meaning, of course, it means "He who shows

the supreme humility." But the term also means "One who humiliates

those who are unrighteous." The Lord is one who leads well (Vi-Naya)

the seekers steadily through the path of truth and righteousness.

 

509. Jayah -The Victorious. One who has conquered all the matter. It

connotes that in order to experience the `Self' we have to conquer

all the lower matter-realms and their by-products. Realizing the

Self, the seeker himself becomes the Self. At that time he has

conquered all.

 

510. Satya-sandhah -Of truthful resolution (Sankalpa). The Lord is

One, who in His perfection, has so completely integrated, that His

resolve, His thoughts, feelings, words and action are always

truthful. There would he no com- promise in them, and as such, every

resolve of His becomes fruitful "Heavens might fall down, the earth

might tumble down, the Himalayas might be crushed, the ocean might

become dry, but My word uttered shall never be in vain." (Purana).

 

511. Daasaarhah –It is a name of Lord Krishna since He was born in

the Dasaarha race (Yaadava-kula). It can also mean "One who is fully

competent to receive all devoted offerings made in the ritualistic

sacrifices."

 

512 Saatvataam-patih -The Lord of the Saatvat-people Those who are

followers of the Tantra named Saatvata-scriptures essentially

Saattvic in nature- are called Saatvatas, and their Lord is Sri

Narayana. The essential path of the Saatvatas is single-pointed

meditation upon the form of Lord Vishnu with utter devotion

 

 

 

Stanza 55

 

jeeva vinayitaa-saakshee mukundo-amitavikramah

ambhanidhiranantaatmaa mahadadhisayo-antakah.

 

 

513. Jeevah -One who remains as the limited ego (jeevah), who in its

sense of separateness comes to experience the endless joys and

sorrows in the fields of life. One who functions as the Experiencer-

of-the-Field (Kshetrajna), as described in the Bhagavat Geeta.

 

514. Vinayitaa-saakshee -The Witness of modesty. He is the one

Consciousness that illumines the very sense of humility in His

devotee's heart. It can also mean that as Pure Consciousness, He is

one without a second, and, therefore, from His state of Universal

Oneness He sees nothing other than Himself everywhere. In this

Absolute Nature He does not see the world of finitude constituted of

the ego and its deluded devilry.

 

515. Mukundah -One who gives liberation. To those who are trying to

free themselves from the imperfections of the matter-conditionings,

and who are struggling hard to end their delusions, Sri Narayana,

being the very Goal, ultimately gives complete liberation for all

devotees who reach Him in the true spirit of total surrender.

 

516. Amita-vikramah -Of immeasurable Prowess or One whose step

(Vikramah) is immeasurable (Amita). The Lord in his Vamana-

incarnation measured the three worlds by His three steps, and,

therefore, He gained the title of `Trivikramaha'. Since the Lord's

steps are so vast, they are, indeed, immeasurable-" Amita"- Vikramah.

 

517. Ambho-nidhih -The direct meaning of the word is "ocean" and the

Lord Himself in the Bhagavat Geeta has declared, "Of the lakes I am

the ocean". According to the Taittireeya Braahmana: "These are the

four Ambhas: viz. the Devas, Men, Manes and the Asuras." Therefore,

the term Ambhonidhih should mean "One who is the substratum for all

the four types of creatures.

 

518. Ananta-atmaa -The Infinite Self. He is undefeated by time,

space, or substance, and, therefore, in His own unconditioned nature

He is the Infinite One Self. Or it can also mean One who manifests

Himself as the endless varieties of entities constituting the

universe. Ananta also means "end-less" and, therefore, the Endless

Self, which means the Paramaatman, the Supreme Self.

 

519. Mahodadhisayah -One who rests on the great ocean. According to

the description of Vishnupurana, Lord Narayana reclines upon the

Aadisesha in the Milky-ocean of Vaikuntha. It can also mean, "One who

remains on a fig-leaf, upon the waters of the deluge, when all names

and forms have been dissolved into the unmanifest.

 

520. Antakah -The Death. As Time, He is the One who brings about

constant changes in the world, without which no evolution or creative

development is ever possible.

 

 

 

Stanza 56

 

ajo mahaarhah svaabhaavyo jitaamitrah pramodanah

aanando nandano nandah satyadharmaa trivikramah.

 

 

521. Ajah -Unborn. As the changeless and deathless Reality, He has

neither birth nor any decay, `Unborn' in philosophy means undying;

therefore, Eternal, Changeless, "Born to Lord Vishnu" is yet another

meaning, and according to this interpretation, the term can

suggest "Pradyumna," son of Vishnu, who is considered to be in our

Purana as an Incarnation of the Lord of Love.

 

522, Mahaarhah –"One who deserves the highest worship." Arhaa

means `poojaa': `worship'.

 

523. Svaabhaavyah -Ever-rooted in the nature of His own Self. One who

is the Uncaused Cause, the God.

 

524. Jitaamitrah -One who has conquered all his enemies both within

and without. Within, He has conquered all enemies such as desires,

hope, etc., and externally, has conquered enemies like Ravana,

Hiranyakasipu and others.

 

525. Pramodanah –`Ever-blissful'. One who is constantly enjoying His

own Eternal, Blissful nature. The term indicates `Vishnu' because Sri

Narayana is the One that causes bliss in the heart of those who

meditate upon Him.

 

526. Aanandah -A mass of Pure Bliss. Bliss is His pure nature. The

Brihadaranyaka Upanishad says: "Of this happiness, all other beings

enjoy only a part."

 

527. Nandanah –"One who makes others blissful." Since the Lord is the

very source of the happiness of the devotees who reach the divine

plane of Pure Consciousness, it is in Him they get themselves

intoxicated with the endless drunkenness of thus unceasing Bliss.

 

528. Nandah -One who is freed from all limited worldly pleasures.

Worldly pleasures come through contact with the objects of the sense-

organs. The term means One who has no contact with the world of

senses, as He dwells in transcendence of all the equipments of

pleasure-the body, mind and intellect. Chandogya Upanishad

says, "That which is immensity is felicity; there is no felicity in

littleness."

 

529. Satyadharmaa -One who has in Him- self all the true Dharmas.

Kindness, non-injury, charity etc. are considered as the noble

Dharmas. Sri Narayana is One in whom we find all these Dharmas to the

maximum. In short, He is the embodiment of Yoga (Yogesvara). It also

means that One who is rich in the experience of the Supreme Self;

for, the Upanishad says: "This alone is the Supreme Dharma which is

to experience the Self through yoga"...

 

530. Trivikramah –"One who has taken the three steps". One who has,

in three steps, conquered the three worlds in his Vamana-incarnation.

The spiritual seeker has only to take three steps to reach the Centre

of the Self in him- self. Once he has stepped across the fields-of-

experiences in the waking, dream and deep-sleep conditions, he has

reached the Infinite Consciousness, the Atman. The very term `Tri' in

Sanskrit means `the three-worlds.' "The greatest men of reflection

have declared the three fields-of-experiences (Loka) by the simple

term `Tri,"-(Harivamsa).

 

 

 

Stanza 57

 

maharshih kapilaachaaryah kritajno medineepatih

tripadastridasaadhyaksho mahaasringah kritaantakrit.

 

 

531. Maharshih Kapilaachaaryah - One who has manifested as the

teacher Kapila, the great sage. "Rishi", the sage, is one who has

mastered a portion of the Veda, and one who has mastered the entire

Vedas is called "Maharshi" in the Hindu tradition. The preceptor

Kapila, who is a great master of the entire Vedic literature, is the

propounder of the Saankhya philosophy. The glory of kapilaachaarya is

endorsed by Lord. Krishna Himself in the Geeta when He declares, "Of

the perfected-ones, I am sage Kapila."

 

532. Kritajnah -The created and the knower of the creation. Kritam

means "the universe that has been created." Jna means "the knower of

all the objects." The Supreme Self is the material cause for

the "knower" ego (Jna), and the effects constitute the world of

things and beings (Kritam). He who is the very substratum for both

cause and effect is the Absolute Self, the Lord. He is unconditioned

by the outer matter vestures such as body etc. and thus Lord Sri

Narayana is the Absolute Reality. Nowadays, this word (Kritajna) has

come to mean "gratitude" or "thanks-giving". It is a cheap

application of this deep meaning. To express to my benefactor that "I

have known (Jna) what he had done (Kritam) to help me" is

thanksgiving, and hence, this usage is today very popular in our

vernacular.

 

533. Medineepatih -The Lord of the Earth, Sri Narayana. The Preserver

Vishnu as the husband of the inert matter, Earth, is a concept at

once immensely beautiful and deep, philosophic and poetic.

 

534. Tripadah –"The One who has taken the three steps." This

indicates, the Vamana-incarnation, and how He measured, in just three

steps, the entire universe. The jeeva, the limited ego, meaning the

seeker, has also to take three steps forward, to reach across the

delusion of the three worlds of sleep, dream and waking. The

meditator can measure these three "worlds" in three steps and arrive

at his own original Real Nature in his inner mystic experience.

 

535. Tridasaadhyakshah –"The Lord of the three steps"-the `three

steps' are waking, dream and deep-sleep. One who is the Witness of

the `three steps' is the Self. It can also mean that One who assumes,

in His play, the three qualities of Sattva, Rajas and Tamas-and yet,

Himself, is not affected by anyone of them.

 

536. Mahaasringah –"The Great-Horned." The term indicates how the

Lord in the Fish-incarnation tied the ship to his great horn and

sported in the waters of the deluge.

 

537. Kritaantakrit -He is the destroyer of the "creation." He is the

Creator, in our subjective life, of the inactive (taamasa) and

positive (saattvic and raajasa) vaasanaas- the sins and the merits.

When the merits are more, the Lord provides a heaven for them to

exist and when the sins are more, they move into the lower wombs,

where sin-vaasanaas, too, get exhausted. An individual seeker when he

exhausts all the above vaasanaas, rises to the realm of the Self and

gets totally identified with the Self. Therefore, Sri Narayana is

that State Divine, wherein all created vaasanaas (Krita) get

destroyed (Anta). Thus, the end (Anta) of the vaasanaas (Krita) is

called "total liberation" (Kritaantam). He who is the giver of the'

krita', Him- self is the giver of "total liberation" (Kritaanta-krit)

…. We find it also interpreted to mean that the Lord is one who has

destroyed (Krindanam) Lord Death (Kritaanta) himself. One who is the

destroyer' Kritaanta', in this sense we can take this term as meaning

the Lord who has taken the form of Rudra, the Destroyer-Lord Siva.

 

 

 

Stanza 58

 

mahaavaraaho govindah sushenah kanakaangade

guhyo gabheero gahano guptaschakragadaadharah.

 

 

538. Mahaa-Varaahah -One who had manifested as the Great Boar. In

order to heave up the world from the slush that formed naturally when

the waters of the deluge receded. This is the third of the Lord's

incarnations.

 

539. Govindah -One who is to be known (Vid) through the declarations

of the Vedanta (Go). In Vishnu Tilaka we read:

 

Here, "Gobhih" means the statements and declarations of the

Upanishads.

 

540. Sushenah -He who has a charming army. The army of Vishnu is

called as His Ganas. They are mainly constituted of the great sages

and hence, their compelling enchantment.

 

541. Kanakaangadee -The bright-as-gold armlets. Armlets are ornaments

worn on the upper arm covering the shoulder and the top portion of

the arm.

 

542. Guhyah -The mysterious; the Profound. Due to the profound nature

of the Truth even in the upanishads the essential theme is

mysteriously secretive. Therefore, the entire Upanishadic literature

is called as "the secret literature." Vishnu is to be realised in the

secret chambers of the heart, so He is called as the Supreme "Secret"

(Guhya).

 

543. Gabheerah –"The Unfathomable." Even the Upanishads declare that

He is unknown. The limited human intellect cannot apprehend or

visualise, or plumb the depth of, or unravel the mystery of His

Wisdom, Power, Strength or Purity.

 

544. Gahanah -He is impenetrable; Imponderable. We cannot dash into

the domain of His Nature Divine. Through surrender alone can we reach

the realm of the Self.

 

545. Guptah -The Well-concealed. He is not easily revealed by words.

Nor can the sense organs ever recognise Him. All the Upanishads

repeatedly declare that the Self-being the very "subject," the

instruments of the body, mind and intellect can never apprehend Him.

He can only be apprehended by a steady mind that has been purified by

continuous meditation "Being the hidden nature of all beings he is

not manifested."

 

546. Chakra-gadaa-dharah -One who is the bearer of the Discus and the

Mace. His Chakra is called Sudarsana; His Gadaa is called Kaumodakee.

The ancient Acharyas have declared that the Discus represents the

Mind and the Mace represents the Intellect.

 

 

 

Stanza 59

 

vedhaah svaangojitah krishno dridhah sankarshanochyutah

varuno vaaruno vrikshah pushkaraaksho mahaamanaah.

 

 

547. Vedhaah -One who is the Creator of the whole universe, the

Supreme who is expressing Himself for the apparent function of

creating the world of plurality. The Infinite Truth functioning

through the Total-Mind is the Creator-Hiranyagarbha. According to

Amarakosha, `Creator' is called as Srashtaa, Prajaapatih or Vedhaah.

 

548. Svaangah -It is commented upon by some, as one who is beautiful,

who has well proportioned limbs. This meaning emphasises the glory

and beauty of the form of the enchanting Vishnu. The same term can

also be interpreted as "Self-instrumental." For the projection of the

pluralistic phenomenal world, He has no instrument other than

Himself. The Lord not only creates everything from Himself but He,

Himself, is the instrumental cause for the world. We have already

indicated earlier that in the making of anything, three causes must

come into play, the "material-cause" (mud), the "instrumental-cause"

(the pot-maker's wheel) and the "efficient- cause" (the intelligent

pot maker). In the case of the creation of the universe all these

three causes are intrinsically the Lord alone. Thus, He is the

material, from which He creates the world by Himself. This idea is

expressed here when the compelling beauty of the Lord's form is being

indicated by the precious term "Self-instrumental."

 

549. A -Jitah -One who is vanquished by none- unconquered-and

therefore, the unconquerable in any of His incarnations. We never

meet Him as vanquished in any of his confrontations with mighty evil.

 

550. Krishnah –One who incarnated in the Yaadava tribe as the son of

Vasudeva and Devakee. It is commented upon as `one who served the

Hindu Spiritual World in the form of Krishna Dvaipaayana' which is

the full name of Vyasa, the author of the Puranas. However, Krishna

also means `The Dark'; the one great Infinite Consciousness that

plays in us constantly, because of which we are aware of our

experiences, and yet, never can we directly apprehend this Source of

All- life within ourselves. The Krishna is the "unknown factor" that

expresses through us-whose manifestations are all our physical,

mental and intellectual capabilities. He is, therefore, called as

the' Unknown', the `Dark'-Krishna.

 

551. Dridhah -"The Firm." One who is firm in His convictions,

judgements, love and mercy. It is in this sense that the Bhakti Marga

describes the Lord often as `A-Dridhah', especially when a sinner

prostrates before Him; meaning that in full repentance were a

criminal to surrender himself to the Lord's Feet, the Infinite

Justice even wavers and becomes anxious to help the sinner out of his

mistaken notions and his consequent ugly actions. The Lord is ever

vigilant to re-establish such a one in his own wisdom, which is his

real nature.

 

552. Sankarshano-achyutah -During the great dissolution of the entire

universe of names and forms, He, being the one who merges the entire

plurality into His own essence-He is called `Sankarshanah.' When an

individual sleeps, his entire world of experiences get absorbed into

himself and they all remain in seed condition in the `Causal-body' as

mere vaasanaas. One who never falls away from His own essential

nature is called `Achyutah' -one who knows no fall (Chyutih). The one

expression used here for the Lord is the combination of both these

terms. The Lord Narayana who absorbs the whole world into Himself at

the time of the deluge, and He who never falls away from His own Real

Nature.

 

553. Varunah -Since, in the evening, the sun reaches the western

horizon (Varuna-Dik), the sun is called Varunah. Also after his day's

functioning in the world, in the dusk he gathers his scorching rays

unto himself and disappears. Like the setting sun, the Lord withdraws

all the pluralistic world unto Himself. The Eternal Reality,

functioning through the sun as the sun's energy and light, is

described in the Upanishads as the `Golden One', and hence the

appropriateness of using this term Varunah for Narayana. The

designation Soorya- Narayana is very familiar to the students of

Purana.

 

554. Vaarunah -The son of Varunah is called Vaarunah. Both Vasishtha

and Agastya are traditionally considered as sons of Varunah.

Therefore, the term indicates the Lord, who manifested himself as

Vasishtha or Agastya. Where-ever there is an explosive expression of

any spectacular glory of stupendous achievement, "understand them all

as coming out of my glory," says Krishna in the Bhagavad Geeta.

 

The term can also be read in some manuscripts as A - Vaarunah-

meaning, according to some commentators, "one whose nature is never

subject to veiling."

 

555. Vrikshah -In the Upanishads the world emerging out of the

Supreme Brahman is described metaphorically as a `Tree'; in the

Kathopanishad and in the Geeta, we read of the Samsaara- Vriksha-the

Tree of Life-exhaustively described. In the Puranas, again we find,

in more than 3 or 4 places, exhaustive descriptions of the world

manifested from the Lord as a `Tree.'

 

556. Pushkaraakshah -One who has eyes (Aksha) as beautiful as the

lotus flowers (Pushkara); the descriptive epithet: `Lotus-eyed.' The

Sanskrit term `Pushkara' also means the Universal-Space, thus, it

also has the interpretation, "one who is ever pervading all space."

 

557. Mahaamanaah –"One who has a great mind." Narayana as the Lord

(Eesvara) is the Supreme Consciousness functioning through the Total-

Mind, and He, with His Mind, creates, sustains and destroys,

fulfilling the great game of Samsar, continuously.

 

 

 

Stanza 60

 

bhagavaan bhagahaanandee vanamaalee halaayudhah

aadityo jyotiraadityah sahishnurgatisattamah.

 

 

558. Bhagavaan -The word `Bhaga', according to the Great Vishnu

Purana means, "One who has all the Six Great Glories-Wealth, Power,

Dharma, Fame, Character, Knowledge and Dispassion-is

called `Bhagavaan'." Again, Vishnu Purana says: "He is named

Bhagavaan who knows (a) the beginning and the end, (b) the arrival

and departure of beings, and also © Vidyaa and Avidyaa." one who

has all the six glorious in himself alone in Bhagavan and these great

mighty power atomically come to Him, because his equipment is the

Total-mind.

 

559. Bhagahaa -One who destroys, during the deluge, the six glories

just mentioned. At this time, the lord absorbs everything unto

himself, and in this sense the term, "destroyer of all great glories.

When thus the total -mind rest from its self-willed projections, the

world of plurality appears have to been absorbed by the lord unto

himself.

 

560. Aanandee –"The one who gives delight." the lord is himself

Absolute Bliss, and those devotees who move towards him in pure

surrender, come to share his divine nature of All-bliss. There is a

version wherein we read this term as `Nandee'. Here, too, there is no

difference in meaning. also this term indicates: "Son of Nandagopal"-

lord krishna-who was natured and tended by Yasodaa and Nandagopal

throughout his childhood.

 

561. Vanamaalee -One who wears always a garland of leavers and

flowers named Vaijantee. Vaishnavas declare this to represent the

subtle aspect of very fine elements themselves, (Bhoota-tanmaatraas).

 

562. Halayudhah –"One who has the plough as his weapon." he is

brother of lord Krishna, Balaabhadra, who is considered as the eight

incarnation of lord Vishnu. Even today in our country the farmer

repeat Bala-rama's name while ploughing for a successful cultivation

and profitable harvest.

 

563. Aadityah -One who was born as the son of Adhiti and Kasyapa as

Vaamana, who begged of Emperor Bali three steps of ground and got all

the three worlds.

 

564. Jyotir-aadityah –"The supreme who is the resplendence in the

Sun." the Atman expressing as the glorious light and energy in the

sun is meditated upon as lord Vishnu. "One must meditate upon Vishnu

who is adorned fully, holding in his hands the conch and Discus,

sitting in padmasana, enveloped in golden hue, in the centre of the

orb of the sun." the Deity residing in the disc of the sun is

Narayana Himself. "Aat" -'from Vishnu'; "ityah" -'to be obtained and

so He is called as Aaditya. This interpretation gives us an insight

into the meaning of the word Sun, in Sanskrit-`Aaditya': "One from

whom all creatures have to receive"! The great-grand-giver is the Sun.

 

565. Sahishnuh -One who calmly endures the pairs of opposites. One

who is above them, and thus is never influenced by these experiences

of the physical and mental realms.

 

566. Gatisattamah -The ultimate refuge for all devotees; the best

(Highest) destination and at once the noblest path. Lord

Narayana. "Gati" means both the goal and the path. In short, One who

is himself the very essence of the spiritual liberation.

 

 

 

Stanza 61

 

sudhanvaa khandaparasurdaaruno dravinnapradhah

divah-sprik sarvadrik vyaaso vaachaspatirayonijah.

 

 

567. Sudhanvaa -One who has his glorious bow-called "Saarga."

Acoording to some, it represents the sense organs and their

activities.

 

568. Khanda-parasuh -One who has the axe- weapon-called "Parasu." The

Lord used this weapon in His Incarnation as Parasuraama, the son of

Jamadagni. It is endowed with terrible prowess in cutting down the

unholy enemies of the nobler life and so it is called as the "Khanda-

Parasu." As such it means `one who wields the invincible Parasu.'

 

569. Daarunah –"The one who is merciless towards the unrighteous." Up

to a point the Lord is All-mercy- but when He finds that no other

method can save the individual, like a surgeon at the operation

theatre, He appears to be relentless-merciless.

 

570. Dravina-pradah -One who lavishly gives wealth asked for by His

devotees. According to Vyasa, Lord Vishnu gives to his true devotees

the wealth of the Sastra knowledge-the deeper and clearer

understanding of the Science of Reality.

 

571. Divah-sprik –"The Sky-reaching." The Lord who revealed His

Universal Form to Arjuna in the Bhagavad Geeta.

 

572. Sarva-drik-vyaasah: -When considered as one word it means: "One

who creates many omniscient men of wisdom." One who encourages the

spread of knowledge and thus turns out many men of wisdom and clearer

understanding of life and the world. Or taken as two words its

interpretation can mean: "One who is Omniscient and Vyasa." This

would mean, "The Lord who has expressed Him- self as Sri Veda Vyasa."

Vyasa is the poet-philosopher who codified, compiled and edited the

Vedas and published them in four volumes-Rig Veda, with its 21

branches; Yajur Veda, with its 101 branches: Saama Veda, with its

1000 branches and the Atharvana Veda, with its 9 branches (or

Saakhaas). He is the one who gave us the 18 Puranas and the

Brahmasootras. Hence he is called: "The Omniscient Vyasa."

 

573. Vaachaspatir-ayonijah -One who is a master of all knowledge

(Vidyaas) and who is unborn through a mother's womb.

 

 

 

Stanza 62

 

trisaamaa saamagah .Saama nirvaanam bheshajam bhishak

samnyaasakrit-sanaah saanto nishthaa saantih paraayanam.

 

 

574. Trisaamaa –"One who has been glorified by the three

Saamas." `Saama' means divine songs-hence, Veda. The one who has been

praised by the singers of the Saama-Veda, those called as the Devas,

the Vratas and the Saamans.

 

575. Saamagah –"The singer of the Saaman songs." One who performs the

actions prescribed in the Saama Veda and who invokes the Lord is

called, in Vedic terminology, the' Udgaataa'.

 

576. Saama -The Lord is the Saama Veda. This is to indicate the

sacredness of the very Book. Lord Krishna has confessed in the

Geeta: "Of Vedas lam the Saama Veda."

 

577. Nirvaanam -The Lord is of the very nature of "Ever-liberated,

Ever-free." There is no trace of imperfection and sorrow in Him whose

nature is, All-Bliss.

 

578. Bheshajam –`Bheshajam' means `medicine.' Hence, He who is the

very specific cure for the disease of Samsar (change, becoming).

 

579. Bhishak -One who is the `Physician,' who is the `cure' for the

disease of Samsar. Or it can also mean that the Lord manifested

during the "churning of the Milky Ocean " as the Deity of Medicine,

holding the pot of Amrita in His hand- The Lord Dhanvantari. In

Indian systems of Medicines, He is considered as the presiding Deity

of the Medical Sciences. Vishnu manifested as this Lord of Doctors,

where upon this name for Him: "Doctor" (Bhishak).

 

580. Samnyaasa-krit -Lord is the institutor of the fourth stage of

life (Aasrama) called `Samnyaasa' which is meant for those who walk

the path of total renunciation. The One who, in His Infinite Grace,

gives the needed qualifications unavoidable for Samnyaasa.

 

581. Samah –"The Calm." One who exists without the mind running out

into the passions of the sense-organs. " In Samnyaasa, He teaches the

life of calmness and quietude and in the accumulated inner peace, the

final experience is gained. The Smriti prescribes the duties of the

four stages as: "The duty of the `Brahmachari' is service; for

the `House- holder', charity; for the `Forest-dweller' is the duty of

restraint, and for the `Samnyaasin' `Calmness'. Samnyaasa without

Sama is inconceivable and this `Calmness' is His nature.

 

582. Saantah -One who is quiet within, as in Him the sense-organs are

perfectly controlled. The Upanishads glorify the Supreme State as

actionless, partless, peaceful. This is a declaration from

Svetaasvatara Upanishad.

 

583. Nishthaa -The Abode of all beings, not only while living, but

during the Pralaya (deluge). During this Cosmic dissolution, the

entire living creatures merge back into their Vaasanaas, (seed-form),

and remain in Him. Therefore, He is called, "The Abode of the

Universe."

 

584. Saantih –"One whose very nature is Peace." Agitations are caused

by desires and the consequent temptations to strive for, acquire and

indulge in them. In the All-Full, there is no desire, hence He need

not seek His fulfilment among the perishable objects of the universe,

and so He is Peace.

 

585. Paraayanam -The Supreme Goal is Narayana. After reaching Him

there is no return In short, the term indicates that Narayana is the

way to the Supreme Liberation (Moksha).

 

 

 

Stanza 63

 

subhaangah saantidah srashtaa kumudah kuvalesayah

gohito gopatir goptaa vrishabhaaksho vrishapriyah.

 

 

586. Subhaangah -One who has the most beautiful form. That one who is

enchanting, most handsome.

 

587. Saantidah -Narayana dispenses that Peace which puts an end to

likes and dislikes (Raaga-Dvesha). He is the One who cleanses the

mind of His devotees and gives to each the inner Peace and Joy.

 

588. Srashtaa –"The Creator of all beings." In the beginning, He has

created all from Himself as the Great Five Elements: (Viranchi).

 

589. Kumudah -The reveller in the Earth. The term `Ku' means Earth.

Therefore, the term means "He who delights in the Earth."

 

590. Kuvalesayah -He who reclines in the waters (Kuvala). Waters

surround the earth, thus it is called as Kuvala. The term can also

mean the `Crawler'-meaning ser- pent. In this sense it indicates-"

Sarpa-Saaye": "One who reclines upon the Great Sesha"-the

Divine "Sesha-Saaye."

 

591. Go-hitah -One who does the Cow-welfare-work, always. Sree

Krishna, through many incidents, helps to develop and conserve the

sacred animal, Cow, for, the very existence of Bharat's dispensation

depends upon the Cow; the agriculture being essentially Cow-

centred. `Go' also means Earth. Thus: "One who saved the world" from

the materialists and their designs of excesses and imperfect vision.

One who protects against the irresponsible havoc, for example, of

Ravana and others; all inimical to the genius of the natural

Bhaarateeya Samskriti.

 

592. Go-patih –"The husband of the Earth." Or, One who is the Lord

protecting all those who are weary of their samsaaric life of

passions and desires. Such ones, exhausted by grazing in the pastures

of dissipation' and enervated from the world of happenings, are

comparable to cows. Hence Narayana is called here as the "Lord of the

Cows", -`Gopaala.' `Go' also may be interpreted as `sense-organs'. In

this way the term suggests "Lord of the Sense-Organs," Sri Narayana,

the Self.

 

593. Goptaa -The root `Gup' has two meanings: to protect; to veil.

Thus `Goptaa' can imply "One who protects the universe" or "One who,

by His Maayaa, veils the glory of the Divine Self within.

 

594. Vrishabhaakshah -One whose eyes rain fulfilment of all desires

of His devotees. He sees the un- expressed desires of His devotees

and fulfils them easily. Or it can be taken that Sri Narayana is "One

whose eyes are Dharma Itself"; meaning, One who sees righteousness

clearly and continuously. If one wants to see clearly righteousness,

he must cultivate and develop the Narayana vision.

 

595. Vrisha-priyah: -Vishnu delights in Dharma. `Vrisha' means'

Dharma,' so the term can be dissolved as "One who delights in

Dharma". Or it can signify, "One who is beloved of the virtuous, the

Good."

 

 

 

Stanza 64

 

anivartee nivrittaatmaa samksheptaa kshemakrit-sivah

sreevatsavakshaah sreevaasah sreepatih sreemataam varah.

 

 

596. Anivartee –"One who never knows retreat." During the clashes

between the Good (Devas) and the Bad (Asuras), Narayana never

retreats. He is One Who never turns back from Dharma; for He is its

friend and protector.

 

597. Nivritta-atmaa -One who is fully restrained from all sense

indulgences. So long as the equipments of our experiences-the Body,

Mind and Intellect-are roaming about in their pleasures-among

objects, emotions and thoughts-our attention is dissipated and is not

available for the contemplation of the Higher, the Self. Narayana is

the Atman in all, and to reach Him we have to retire from the fields

of our indulgences. Hence, He is indicated as the "Restrained-Self."

 

598. Samksheptaa -The One who absorbs unto Himself the entire

universe of multiplicity during the dissolution-the "Involver."

Narayana presides over not only the evolution but also is the

controller at the involution. In some readings, we find this term

as " Asamksheptaa"-meaning "One who never abandons His devotees."

 

599. Kshema-krit –"The doer of Good"; One who protects and guides the

devotees. "Kshema" signifies protecting what has been gained, and it

includes " Yoga" also, meaning "acquiring things not yet gained." In

Geeta, Lord Krishna promises that "I shall govern both your' Yoga'

and `Kshema' when you are a true devotee."

 

600. Sivah -Lord Narayana is adored here as Sivah and, at the same

time, all Vaishnavites repeat Vishnu- sahasranaama. Human prejudices

have no logic or reason. Sri Narayana is Siva (auspiciousness) and

there is no difference between the two. "I am the dweller of

Vaikuntha, Vishnu. Between us there is no difference," so says Lord

Siva Himself. Vishnu is the "Purifier" (Siva), as His names, when

chanted, and His form-divine, when meditated upon, become a means of

quietening the mind and sharpening our perceptions of the subtler and

the transcendental.

 

601. Sreevatsa-vakshaah -One who has the mark, Sreevatsa, upon His

divine and sacred chest.

 

602. Sree-vaasah -The Abode of Sree; the dwelling place of Mother

Lakshmi. This term is dissolved as "Sree"-all glory and riches-ever

dwell in His bosom of love and beauty.

 

603. Sree-patih -The Lord of Goddess Lakshmi. During the great

churning of the Ocean of Milk, holding a lotus in hand, there rose

Lakshmi from it, and She chose, among all gods, Lord Vishnu as Her

Beloved Husband. Hence Narayana is Sree-Patih, the Lord of Sree. The

Svetasvatara upanishad says: "The Supreme Sakti of Him is declared to

be various." Sree represents the Energy (Paraa Sakti) in the

universe. Lord Narayana is the One Vital Truth that functions through

the Paraa Sakti and gives Her the dynamism to act and to accomplish.

 

604. Sreemataam-varah: -The best among those who have glory-in-life,

(Sree), is Narayana. Taittireeya Braahmana says, "The Rig, Yajus and

Saaman are the imperishable wealth of the wise", so Sree has been

interpreted here to mean the Vedas. Lord Narayana is the One who is

the Best among those who know the `Books'; He being the very Infinite

Reality that is the one theme of all the Vedas. Also Varah can

mean "One Who blesses" and thus the term under discussion yields the

meaning, "Vishnu, Who is the Lord That blesses all great students of

the Vedas."

 

 

 

Stanza 65

 

sreedah sreesah sreenivaasah sreenidhih sreevibhaavanah

sreedharah sreekarah sreyah sreemaan-lokatrayaasrayah.

 

 

605. Sree-dah -One who gives Sree to all His sincere and dedicated

devotees. Narayana provides wealth, for all His ardent devotees. He

is the River of Knowledge and Joy for all devoted hearts which are

surrendered to Him.

 

606. Sreesah -The Lord of the Goddess of Wealth, Sree-Mahalakshmi.

Her wealth is `the ability to nourish.' Thus She gives to the

striving devotee, the mighty and noble virtues, his inner wealth.

 

607. Sree-nivaasah -One who dwells and manifests in the good people.

Here the word Sree is to be understood as "those who have Sree in

them." The One Who abides in purified hearts-wherein the passions and

lusts have been removed and peace, joy, devotion and understanding

have arrived. In such people the Self comes to shine all by Itself.

 

608. Sree-nidhih -One Who is the treasure- house (Nidhih) of Sree.

Vishnu, being the All-Full and Perfect, all glories draw themselves

from Him alone. Even Sree-Maayaa --can play Her games only when She

draws Her vitality from Narayana, the Self.

 

609. Sree-bibhaavanah –"One Who is a Distributor of Sree." Vishnu

provides each, according to his merit, the wealth, both inner and

outer. Sree Narayana is the Law behind actions and so He is the

Dispenser of the fruits- of-actions.

 

610. Sree-dharah -Lord always carries Sree in His bosom. In short,

Atman, the Self, is never divorced from Its omnipotence and All-

Fullness.

 

611. Sree-karah -One Who confers Sree upon His devotees who remember

Him continuously, reflect upon His nature and meditate upon His

Glories.

 

612. Sreyah -Narayana is Moksha-Liberation. He is the Way and the

Goal. He gives to His devotees the total liberation from all their

physical passions, emotional agitations and intellectual

restlessnesses.

 

613. Sreemaan –One Who possesses all Glories, Riches, Capacities and

Beauties. He who is the owner of all Sree; the abode of all Its

Splendour.

 

614. Lokatraya-asrayah -The Shelter for the three worlds. The

Substratum for the three worlds-of-experiences (waking, dream and

deep-sleep). If the Self, the Consciousness, were not in us, no

experience would ever be ours. Narayana is this "objectless

awareness."

 

 

 

Stanza 66

 

svakshah svangah sataanando nandirjyotirganesvarah

vijitaatmaa vidheyaatmaa salkeertischhinnasamsayah.

 

 

615. Svakshah -Brilliantly "Beautiful-Eyed". is Vishnu.

 

616. Svangah –"Beautiful-Limbed." Most hand- some form, captivating

the hearts of all His loving devotees.

 

617. Sataanandah -One who divides Himself into the infinite Jeevas,

manifesting through the different equipments and experiences in all

of them. "Of infinite varieties of Joys": gained through the

individual equipments from each one's appointed field of things and

beings.

 

618. Nandih –"Infinite Bliss" is the nature or Vishnu as the Supreme

Self. Thus by this term, Nandih, He is called.

 

619. Jyotir-ganesvarah -The Lord of the luminaries in the Cosmos is

Narayana. He, as the Self, gives light to al! brilliant things in

life. The Sun, itself, receives its light borrowed from the Infinite,

Ever-Effulgent Self. Kathopanishad describing the Self as the Light

or Consciousness declares, "When He shines all else shines after

Him."

 

620. Vijitaatmaa -One who has conquered the sense-organs. That

devotee who is no more a slave to his sense-organs comes to

experience the necessary mental quiet with which Narayana, the Self,

can be apprehended.

 

621. Vidheyaatmaa -One who has come to live under the command of the

Higher Self or One Who is ever available for devotees to command in

love. Some read this as "A- Vidheya-Atmaa" -in which case it declare$

that Narayana is "One Who is of Unfathomable Nature-Divine." One who

obeys none, but all obey His Will is " A- Vidheyaatmaa."

 

622. Sat-keertih -Of Pure Fame is Narayana. He is the husband of Sree

and therefore He is famous.

 

623. Chhinnasamsayah -One, whose doubts are ever at rest, or solved.

Doubts regarding the Supreme can be only so long as we try to

experience and comprehend Him with our Intellect. He is the very

subjective vitality in the Intellect. So, on transcending the

Intellect, the seeker can "become" the Self in a non-mediate

experience, intimate and immediate. Once having become the Self,

there cannot be any spiritual doubts. Therefore Narayana, the Self,

is known as "The One in whom all doubts are resolved." In Geeta,

Arjuna admits that all his doubts were cleared.

 

 

 

Stanza 67

 

udeernah sarvataschakshuraneesah saasvatasthirah

bhoosayo bhooshano bhootirvisokah sokanaasanah.

 

 

624. Udeernah –"The Great Transcendent." He is the Infinite beyond

all finitude, beyond all limitations and change, and therefore,

beyond decay. Transcending all equipments of our experiences, as the

Self in all, Sri Narayana revels as the Immutable Transcendental

Reality, the sole substratum for the entire universe of forms and

actions.

 

625. Sarvatah-chakshuh –"One Who has eyes everywhere." Geeta declares

Truth, the Pure Consciousness, as "Hands and legs everywhere, eyes-

face-mouth everywhere." Vishnu, as the Consciousness, is the One Self

That sees through all eyes in the world, hence He, through all eyes,

sees everywhere at all times. If He is not, the eyes are blind; when

He is the indweller. The eyes then see-therefore, all eyes are only

His.

 

626. Aneesah –"One Who has none to lord over Him." The Supreme Lord

is He. Mahanarayana upanishad says, "None rules over Him."

 

627. Saasvata-sthirah –"One Who is ever Eternal and Stable"-never

changing, thus permanent (Eternal) and ever-the-same (Stable). The

body changes, the mind modifies, the intellect grows into new

dimensions-but the Consciousness that illumines them all with Its

Light of Knowledge is ever-the-same through childhood, through youth,

in middle years and old-age. It is the Changeless throughout, hence

Eternal and ever-the-same with- out any change.

 

628. Bhoosayah –"Resting on the Earth" is the word-meaning of this

term, so it may signify One Who rested on the shores of the ocean, on

His Way to Lanka- referring to Sri Ramachandraji. Or, one who slept

(on) the Earth-meaning the Lord is Bhoo-Pati, the Husband of the

Mother Earth. Or, its intention may also be: "One in whom the world

rests" at the time of dissolution.

 

629. Bhooshanah –"One Who adorns the world": physically with the

infinite beauties of His Creation; emotionally He gives love and

other finer instincts, and intellectually He is the One behind all

great, noble and beautiful thoughts which have enriched human life,

history and culture. Lord Narayana, in His various Incarnations, has

also glorified the world.

 

630. Bhootih -One who is the Pure "BE"-ness or Existence. " Bhooti"

also means Glories (Aisvarya), so He is One Who is the treasure-house

of all Glories.

 

631. Visokah -Narayana is sorrow-less; grief- less. He is the Self,

transcending all matter vestures. At the body-mind-intellect level

there are agitations and so there are sorrows. He is beyond them all,

so He, as the Absolute Reality, is indicated as All-Blissful.

Disturbances of sorrow or grief can never molest His nature of

Infinite Bliss--ever contented, ever desire-less.

 

632. Soka-naasanah -The destroyer of all sorrows for His devotees.

One who lifts the suffering ego- sense out of its meaningless

identification with the changing, pain-breeding, equipments and gives

it the true wisdom of Its Divine Nature. To those who truly

worship "To them I shall be, err long, a Saviour from the Ocean of

Samsar", promises Lord Krishna in the Bhagavat Geeta.

 

 

 

Stanza 68

 

archishmaanarchitah kumbho visuddhaatmaa visodhanah

aniruddhoapratirathah pradyumnoamitavikramah.

 

 

633. Archishmaan –"The Effulgent." As Pure Consciousness, Narayana is

the Source of all Light. The Kathopanishad confirms this when it

declares, "There, neither the sun nor the moon, nor the stars nor the

lightning, has any effulgence; how then can this Fire-light illumine

It? By Its Light alone, all else in the world is illumined."

 

634. Architah -One who is constantly worshipped by His devotees. Even

Brahmaaji (The Creator) and Siva (The Destroyer) are worshipping Sri

Narayana (The Preserver). Hence this term, "The Worshipped" for Lord

Vishnu.

 

635. Kumbhah –"The pot." The Lord, the Self, is called as "the pot"

because just as things are contained within a pot, so the whole

universe rests within Him, the "Container" and "Sustainer."

Everything and every happening is within Him alone.

 

636. Visuddha-atmaa –"One Who has the purest Soul." When the Self is

cleansed of all passions and thought agitations, in that

uncontaminated purity It is realised. Therefore, the Lord, the Self,

is called the Pure Atman, completely bereft of all equipments and

their passions, all disturbances from desire. One who is beyond

the "Three Gunas," Trigunaateetah, meaning one who transcends all the

Vaasanaas that generate the three moods constituting the entire

phenomenon, Maayaa.

 

637. Visodhanah –"The Great Purifier." The One, meditating upon whom

all vaasanaas get exhausted and the personality purified from these

desires, becomes free of all its accustomed, existent agitations. He

who is the very Source of Purity; who lends purity even to the sacred-

places. By remembering Him, the human heart becomes cleansed of its

sins, immaculately swept of all consequent feelings of restlessness.

 

638. Aniruddhah -Of the four manitestations (Vyoohas) of Vishnu, the

Aniruddha manifestation is indicated here. The four Vyoohas are: (I)

Vaasudevah; (2) Samkarshanah; (3) Pradyumnah; and (4) Aniruddhah. The

term can also mean "He Who is invincible by any of His enemies."

 

639. Apratirathah -One who is never challenged by any enemies and

who has no enemies to even threaten Him. Sri Narayana is without

enemies; in His loving Presence they are vanquished.

 

640. Pradyumnah –"Very Rich." Lord is Lakshmi-Pati and, in His

benevolence, He gives riches and mighty glory to His devotees.

Pradyumnah can also be the third of His four manifestations as

Vyoohas.

 

641. Amita-vikramah -Of immeasurable Prowess is Sri Narayana. The

Self, the Supreme, is Omnipotent and none can stand against Him. It

can also mean, "One who has un-measurable steps" exhibited in His

Divine performance in His Vamana Incarnation.

 

 

 

 

 

Stanza 69

 

kaalaneminihaa veerah saurih soorajanesvarah

trilokaatmaa trilokesah kesavah kesihaa harih.

 

 

642. Kaalaneminihaa -The slayer of the Asura, Kaalanemi. "Kaala"

means `Time.' The Self is the `destroyer of time' as It is beyond the

intellect and `time' is but a concept of the intellect only.

 

643. Veerah –"The Heroic Victor." One who is ever victorious.

 

644. Saurih -Born in the Soorasena-clan, in Jagannaath-which, in the

Puranas, is called the Utkala country. Also, Sauri can indicate the

One who has invincible prowess always.

 

645. Soorajanesvarah –"The Lord of the valiant." Sri Narayana, the

fountain-head of irresistible might. He is invoked by the victorious,

and is the Source of strength from which even lndra and others draw

their vigour.

 

646. Triloka-atmaa –"The Reality, the Self of the three worlds."

The `three-worlds' are the three `fields of experiences': the waking,

the dream and the deep-sleep. As the Pure Consciousness, in the Light

of which the waker-dreamer- sleeper comes to experience all

the `three-worlds,' the Self, Sri Narayana is called "The Atman of

the three-worlds."

 

647. Triloka-eesah –"The Lord of the three-worlds." Lord is One in

whose presence all activities take place; in Whose absence all

activities cease. He is called the Lord, the Great Proprietor. When

life, the Self, manifests in a body, all experiences take place; when

life is extinct, all activities cease. Hence Lord Narayana is the

Self, the spark of Existence in all creatures.

 

648. Kesavah -Generally it is meant to describe Lord Krishna as "One

Who has long hairs." But Kesas are the rays of the Lord that illumine

the Sun, Moon and such other effulgent things of the Cosmos. "The

rays of mine that illumine (the Sun, etc.) are called Kesas.

Therefore. the wise Brahmins call Me, Kesava." Also' Ka' means

Brahmaa, the Creator and `Eesa' means Siva, the Destroyer. Both of

them have sprung from Vishnu, the Preserver, hence He is called

Kesavah.

 

649. Kesihaa -One Who destroyed the Asura called Kesi.

 

650. Harih -The Lord is called "The Destroyer." He, it is, who

destroys the false values and the inner conflicts created by man in

his own life and in his consequent discordant contact with the world

around him. These confusions and sorrows created by man, for man in

life, due to his own ignorance of his own divine nature, is called

Samsaara. Lord Narayana is the Destroyer of this Samsara-sorrows in

His devotees.

 

 

 

Stanza 70

 

kaamadevah kaamapaalah kaamee kaantah kritaagamah

anirdesyavapurvishnurveeroananto dhananjayah.

 

 

651. Kaamadevah –"The Beloved Lord." One who is a seeker must

necessarily get charmed by the Glory of Sree Narayana, and by the

influence of this captivating love He is to be worshipped. Thus One

Who is to be loved and worshipped by the seekers who strive for the

four "aspirations-in-life"-Purushaarthas. There is also this meaning

for the term: "The One Who is Pradyumnah"-since Pradyumna- form is an

incarnation of Kaama (Love).

 

652. Kaamapaalah –"The Fulfiller of Desires of all His true

devotees." Those who in their sincere attitude and love for Him alone

are surrendered unto Him, their hearts' inner longings are satisfied

by Him. The same idea finds similar but varied interpretation in that

Koomapaalah can imply "One Who had taken the incarnation of

Balarama," for Balarama is called as the "Wielder-of-the-plough"

(Hala-ayudhah) or as Kaamapaalah. Thus it can also mean "Protector

(Paalah) of His devotees" (Kaama, meaning the `Desired Ones').

 

653. Kaamee -One who has fulfilled all His desires. Desire is an

expression of an inherent sense of in- completeness-and this

insufficiency unto oneself is called ignorance of the Self. The non-

apprehension of Reality gives rise to endless misapprehensions of the

same. Sree Narayana is the Self, the Reality, and so all non-

apprehensions must end in Him, then no desires can ever remain in Him

demanding fulfilment. He is "One of fulfilled desires" ...Some

commentators give just the opposite explanation, since the term

Kaamee in Sanskrit can also mean "One who has desires." Here it would

mean that Lord Vishnu is the Supreme Reality who "desired to create"

the world of plurality. The Upanishads roar: "He desired" (Sah

akaamayata). The creative urge in the Supreme is that which expressed

as the apparent illusion of a playful creation of multiplicity and

the endless varieties in them.

 

654. Kaantah –"Of Enchanting-Form;Supremely-Handsome;" the "Beauty

of Beauty itseIf." In all His Incarnations we find Him described as

extremely charming with His Grace and Beauty. In Sanskrit the term

Kah means the Creator, Brahmaaji. In this sense, therefore, Kaantah

can suggest "One Who destroys even the Creator during the

dissolution."

 

655. Kritaagamah -The author of the Scriptures (Aagamas). Sruti and

Smriti form the Aagamas. Or in perfect harmony with the preceding

term where Lord is termed as the destroyer of even the Creator at the

time of deluge, some commentators have again interpreted this term

as "The One Who is the inaugurator of the Krita-Yuga." This means the

Lord is One into Whom the world dissolves and from Whom the world

rises up again.

 

656. Anirdesya-vapuh –"Of Indescribable Form;Of Indefinable

Nature." Since the Lord transcends the Elements and is the very cause

for the three Gunas- as the pure Self, expressing Itself through the

body, mind and intellect of man-it becomes impossible to describe or

define His Form.

 

657. Vishuh –"All-Pervading." One who pervades the entire Visvam. In

His Visvaroopa-Form in Geeta XI we have from Arjuna a description of

the dazzling wonderment of Him as " All-pervading."

 

658. Veerah –"The Valiant;The Courageous- the One of heroic

exploits." The root' `Vi' often means creation, radiance existence,

involution or motion. One who has a1l these powers is called Veerah.

 

659. Anantah -"Infinite; Endless." That which is unconditioned by

Time-Space-Substance is `Infinite.' None can discover the end or such

a Truth. Conditioned things will all have an end-a change from one

condition to another. The Infinite is totally unconditioned, so

unlimited, and naturally, therefore, changeless. Hence Narayana is

Infinite.

 

660. Dhananjayah -One who had gained through his conquest and his

prowess vast wealth for the enrichment of his country. From his

various campaigns, Arjuna had brought great wealth to the land. In

Geeta, Lord Krishna says: "I am Dhananjaya, among the sons of Pandu.

 

 

 

Stanza 71

 

brahmanyo brahmakrit brahmaa brahma brahmavivardhanah

brahmavid braahmano brahmee brahmajno braahmanapriyah.

 

 

661. Brahmanyah -One who is a great friend of Brahman. The term

Brahman includes in its connotation the Sastra, Tapas, Vedas, Truth,

Knowledge, etc. Sree Narayana is a protector and friend of all these.

Here Brahman means Jeeva-a friend of all individuals.

 

662. Brahma-krit -The One Who performs the Brahman-meaning the one

who lives in Truth, who abides in Tapas, etc. He is the author of

Brahman as enumerated in the explanation of the preceding term.

 

663. Brahmaa –"Creator." As the total Creative- power, it is Narayana

Who functions as Creator through Brahmnaji.

 

664. Brahma –"The Biggest, the Vastest, the An- Pervading."

Upanishads thunderingly declare the Brahman to be "Existence-

Knowledge Infinite." The Knowledge which lifts all false perceptions

of differences, pure in all its aspects, ever beyond the grasp of the

senses, and that which can be experienced only in one's own Self, is

called Brahman."

 

665. Brahma-vivardhanah –"One who increases the Brahman." Here, of

course, the term Brahman means "Austerities, Vedas, Truth,

Knowledge." These are increased in one who has earned the Grace of

Sree Narayana through total surrender and constant devotion.

 

666. Brahma-vit –"One Who knows Brahman." The meaning here is one who

has intuited the Vedas and their full commentaries. In Geeta (XV) we

listen to the Lord declaring that: "I alone am the Author of the

Vedas and the Knower of the Vedas." Brahman alone can "know" Brahman

just as the "dreamer" can never survive to know the "waker." The

knower-of-the-waker is the "Waker" alone. Similarly, the

individualised ego conditioned by the equipments of Body, Mind and

Intellect experiences the Brahman only when it has transcended the

entanglements of matter-and then the ego is no more a Jeeva

but "becomes Brahman." Thus the Higher is experienced only by the

Higher. Sree Narayana is the Brahman-and therefore, He alone is the

Knower of Brahman.

 

667. Braahmanah -One who has realised that the pluralistic world is a

mere superimposition upon the Brahman caused by an error of

judgement, and who experiences the Supreme Consciousness of the One

Reality is a Braahmanah. His duty is to convey this knowledge to

others with a pure missionary zeal and a higher proselytising

enthusiasm. By mere accident of birth one does not become a

Braahmanah. Visvamitra and others through their Tapas and Divine

Experience had reached the status of Brahmin-hood, so we read in the

Puranas. Narayana manifests as such mighty men of realisation,

serving their generations through their teachings.

 

668. Brahmee –"One Who is with Brahma." The term Brahma meaning as

before –"Austerities, Vedas, Truth and Knowledge-divine."

 

669. Brahma-jnah -One who lives ever in Brahman, and so "knows" the

nature of the Brahman. He, the Lord, being the very Brahman, no one

knows His nature as He Himself can. The "waker" alone knows the

waking- the "dreamer" and "sleeper" can never realise and experience

the waking-state until they "become" the "waker."

 

670. Braahmana-priyah -One who is the beloved or and One Who is the

lover of true men of full realisation, the Braahmanas. Not the caste,

but the men of supreme experience-divine. The Lord is dear to them,

and they too are dear to Him.

 

 

 

Stanza 72

 

mahaakramo mahaakarmaa mahaatejaah mahoragah

mahaakraturmahaayajvaa mahaayajno mahaahavih.

 

 

671, Mahaakramah –"Of Great-Step." Directly we are reminded of the

Vamana-Incarnation when the Lord measured the three worlds by His

three steps. It also indicates the root meaning of the term, Vishnu-

"The one who has the long stride-meaning, " All-pervading." Since He

is All-pervading, He reaches everywhere earlier than all others.

 

672. Mahaakarmaa –"One Who performs great deeds." The creation, the

dissolution, the protection and the spread of the Knowledge-of-

Truth, all these are indeed great undertakings. He alone performs

them, through Maha- Purushas who have surrendered themselves unto Him-

those who, in total surrender, have indeed become one with the Lord

in love and being.

 

673. Mahaatejaah –"Of Great Resplendence." The Upanishads glorify Him

in that even the Sun, Moon, the stars and fire have no light of their

own. By Him they shine, the Giver of Light to all. In the Geeta, the

Lord insists that "The Supreme is the Light of all lights, beyond all

darkness" and again He asserts, "Understand that Light in the Sun by

which the whole world is illumined, and that Light in the Moon and in

the fire to be My own Light." Here the Light of Consciousness, the

Self, is indicated.

 

674. Mahoragah –"The Great Serpent." Uraga means serpent In Geeta,

Bhagavan says (Among the nagas, the many-hooded serpents, I am

Ananta.) Ananta is the five-headed Great Serpent also called Sesha,

upon which the Lord Vishnu reclines. Again in Geeta the Lord says

(Among the serpents I am Vasuki), Mythologically, this is the serpent

adorning Lord Siva's ring finger, Though so small as to become a ring

for the Lord, it was this Vaasuki who offered himself as the great

rope in churning the milky ocean. This paradox reminds us of the

Upanishadic declaration (Smaller than the smallest and greater than

the greatest).

 

675. Mahaakratuh –"The Great Sacrifice." The Supreme cannot be

experienced without the greatest sacrifice, the total sacrifice of

the Ego, the jeeva-Bhaava. The Great Sacrifice indicates

traditionally the Asvamedha Yaaga. There- fore, some commentators

explain this term "as one who is of the very form of Asvamedha

Yaaga."

 

676. Mahaayajvaa –"One Who had performed Great Yajnas." In the Rama-

Incarnation, He had performed Asvamedha- Yaaga. He is the One, by

Whose Grace, all "Sacrifices" are fulfilled successfully. One who

performs sacrifice properly and faithfully is called Yajvaa.

 

677. Mahaayajnah –"The Great Yajna," In Bhagavat Geeta, the Lord in

describing His Immanence in the world says to Arjuna: "I am among the

Yajnas, the Japa- Yajna." Lord Narayana Himself is the greatest Yajna-

therefore, in devotion approach Him and gain His Grace. The Japa

Yajna is glorified by the Lord as the greatest sacrifice because it

is both the essential means of all other Yajnas and transcends them

all as an end in itself, by maintaining a constant stream of the same

divine thoughts in the mind.

 

678. Mahaa-havih –"The Great Offering." The yajna is He; the very

things offered to the sacred fire, the Havis, are also He. Geeta

tells us, "We offer to Brahman that which is Brahman, in the fire

which is Brahman, and the act of offering is also Brahman."

 

 

 

Stanza 73

 

stavyah stavapriyah stotram stutih stotaa ranapriyah

poornah poorayitaa punyah punyakeertiranaamayah.

 

 

679. Stavyah –"One Who is the object of all praise"-meaning, One Who

deserves all our praise but One who has none top praise, he is

praised by all and he praises none. The jeeva invokes him; the self,

the atman, never invokes the ignorant jeeva.

 

680. Stava-priyah –One who is invoked through the loving chants of

the devoted hearts. When a devoted seeker melts away in singing the

praise of the lord, his physical, mental and intellectual

preoccupations with objects, emotions and thoughts silently roll away

from him. In such quiet moments they rise above their present nature

and explode into the realms of experiences of the higher state of

divine consciousness – Sree Narayana.

 

681. Stotram –"The hymn." A glorious hymn, that describes the lords

divine nature, itself is he, as the words lift the singer into the

experience of the supreme nature of the truth. It is infallible if

the singer of the Hymn has full devotion and ardent aspiration to

realise him. "Naama" and "Naamee" are one and the same in experience.

 

682. Stutih –"The act of praise." The very noble, divine "act of

invoking the lord" is by his grace alone.

 

683. stotaa –"One who adores or praises." The true devotee, singing

the divine hymns is also of the nature of supreme peace, love,

beauty, goodness- the divine qualities attributed to the lord in whom

he dissolves through his songful identification. Such a devotee in

this at–one–ment with Him, the lord praises again and again as "He is

the one dear to Me."

 

684. Rana-priyah –"Lover of Battles." Hence we see sree Narayana ever

carrying his mace and discuss in order to destroy the vulgar and thus

protect the decent. Here "battle" is the constant struggle for

evolution.

 

685. Poornah –"The Full." The infinite is ever the same. Though

things are apparently emerging out of it, still the supreme remains

irreducible and without a change. Lord Narayana is Ever-Full with is

own glories and powers; One who is full with all the wealth, inner

and outer, the supreme lakshmi-pati.

 

686. Poorayitaa –"The Fulfiller." Lord Hari fulfils, surely, all the

desires and demands of his true devotees.

 

687. Punyah –"The truly–Holy." When the devotee's heart is filled

with remembrance of the glorious from divine and infinite nature and

supreme of the lord Vishnu, he then, in that very moment, removes all

sin from his devotee's heart. The lord is Auspiciousness itself, so

where he is invoked, all inauspiciousness must immediately retire.

 

688. Punya-keertih –"Of Holy frame." He is gloriously renowned as the

holy one. Whoever glorifies him becomes himself holy. All the unholy

animal passions in the devotee are routed and beaten back when his

heart is wholly in tune with the lord's Glory and Form.

 

689. Anaamayah –One who has neither the mental or physical diseases.

Of pure unstained divine essence is his nature. He is not involved in

karmas, thus the resultant of the karmas which visit us in terms of

mental restlessness or physical pangs, never touch Him.

 

 

 

Stanza 74

 

manojavasteerthakaro vasurtaah vasurpradah

vasuprado vaasudevo vasurvasumanaah havih.

 

 

690. Manojavah –Fleet as the mind is the Lord's movement. He is

anxious to run and reach the devotee to remove his suffering and

ignorance. All-pervading is the lord, thus he is faster than all

those who run after him – and wherever they reach, the supreme, He,

in the form of existence, is already there.

 

691 Teerthakarah –"The Teacher of the Teerthas" The term, Teertha"

means vidyaas. Sree Narayana is the author of the Vidyaa, or

auxiliary Sciences Therefore, "One Who is the most ancient Teacher of

all Vidyaas and Tantras."

 

692 Vasuretaah –"He Whose Essence is Golden." In the beginning of

Creation were the primeval waters Into this One Ocean the Lord

dropped His Essence and it became a Golden Egg from which Brahmaa,

the Creator, first arose Thus Lord, as the womb of all Creation is

mentioned in the Puranas as "Hiranyagarbha," the Golden Womb

 

693 Vasupradah –"The Free-Giver of Wealth" Inn this context, Vasu

means "Worldly-Wealth"- money, property, grains, possessions, progeny

Lord Vishnu who nourishes and maintains all beings with the wealth of

His consort, Sree Laksmi, distributes and patronises His devotees

very liberally

 

694. Vasupradah -Again, the same term as we read above, but here if

means "The Giver of Salvation" Liberation (Moksa) is the greatest

wealth-whom He chooses, Moksha is gained by him alone.

 

695. Vaasudevah –"The son of Vasudeva," Lord Krishna. Or "One Who is

Vaasu and DevaVaasu" means "One who dwells in all creatures as

their ego-centric individuality (Jeeva-raopa)." `Deva' means "One who

revels" Therefore, this name for Lord Krishna has the appropriate

meaning "One who revels in every living creature as the Jeeva-entity

in each".

 

696 Vasuh –"The Refuge for all." The One Who dwells within, veiled

behind Maayaa, the mind The mind projects this play of things,

beings, emotions and thoughts. The world is the shadow-show round the

Pure Consciousness Lord declares in Geeta: "I am the beginning, the

middle and also the end of all beings." Thus He alone is the Refuge,

for there is no other existence. "All have emerged out from Me, exist

in Me and must come back to Me."

 

697. Vasumanaah -One who is attentive to, and, therefore, concerned

with every object and being in this world: "Omnipresent."

 

698. Havih –"The Oblation." That which we offer unto Him is also

permeated by Him-there is nothing other than He, Himself, the same

everywhere, in all places, at all times. In Geeta, Lord insists that

the "oblations" are nothing but Brahman."

 

Stanza 75

 

sadgatih satkritih sattaa sadbhootih satparaayanah

sooraseno yadusreshthah sannivaasah suyaamunah.

 

 

699. Sadgatih –"The goal of good and noble seekers." Lord Narayana is

the Spiritual Goal to be reached. "The Good" here means those who

know the existence of Brahman, for the Upanishad says: "If a person

knows `Brahmaji exists,' then the wise call him `good."

 

700. Sat-kritih –"One Who is full of Good Actions." Lord Hari is the

One Who maintains the rhythm of creation and the logic of its

preservation. Even through His destructive activities, there is

creation only for the sake of the individual and for the good of the

world. All His actions are totally in harmony for the establishment

of Peace.

 

701. Sattaa -The Lord is the "One without a second," and, therefore,

remains ever the same, without any differences of genus, species or

in Itself."

 

702. Sad-bhootih –"One Who has Rich Glories." The term `Glories'

means wealth, power, happiness Or "One who has taken different kinds

of Incarnations," exhibiting in all of them the glories of the

Supreme. So immeasurable are the Lord's Glories that even all these

splendours scarcely reveal His Divine Might. Him, whom even the Devas

know not; only the Yogis in meditation come to perceive His Eternal

Glory.

 

703 Sat-paraayanah –The Supreme Goal for the "Good" who pursue the

path of Truth. Here the "Good" means those who are the Knowers of

Brahman.

 

704 Soora-senah –"One who has heroic and valiant armies" The

Incarnations as Rama and Krishna are indicated here in whose armies

there were valiant people like Hanuman and Lakshmana, Arjuna, Bheema

and others.

 

705. Yadusreshthah –"The Best among the Yadava clan." The Glory of

the Yadavas-Lord Krishna, Who was an Incarnation of Sree Hari.

 

706. Sannivaasah –"The Abode of the Good." The great souls of

realisation come to live in Him, the Self; drowned in God-

Consciousness, they beam out from that Abode their divinity all

around. Bhagavan in Geeta says: "My devotee thus knowing (realising

the Truth, the jneyam, seated in the heart of all) enters into My

Being."

 

707. Suyaamunah -One who is attended by the righteous Yaamunas-

meaning Gopas who live on the Yamuna banks. In a metaphysical sense,

these Gopas are not the keepers of `cows,' but the keepers of the

sacred milk of Knowledge-Upanishads.

 

 

 

Stanza 76

 

bhootaavaaso vaasudevah sarvaasunilayo-analah

darpahaa darpado dripto durdharo-athaaparaajitah.

 

 

708. Bhootaavaasah –"The very dwelling place of the Great

Elements.Since the Beings (Elements) dwell in You, You are

called `Bhootaavaasa,' " so says Harivamsa. Bhagavaan Himself says in

the Geeta: "I am the Source of all Creation." Therefore He is also

called the `Bhootayoni.'

 

709. Vaasu-devah -One who envelops the world with His Maayaa-powers

of veiling and agitations. The Lord discloses: "I pervade the whole

world with My Glory, as the Sun with its rays."

 

710. Sarvaasu-nilayah –"The Abode of all Life-Energies." One who is

the very Substratum for the life and existence of all creatures. He

is the Self, the Life in all of us-therefore, He is the very support

for the Praana in each living creature.

 

711. Analah –"One who is unlimited wealth, power and Glory." There is

no boundary for his Glories – there is no limit for his greatness,

and All-pervasive. `Of my Divine Glories there is no end', Bhagavan

Himself reveals to Arjuna.

 

712. Darpahaa –"The Destroyer of the pride in evil-minded people."

Easily He curbed the pride of Indra and others by lifting the

mountain and protecting the cows of the Yamuna banks.

 

713. Darpadah –"One who gives pride to the righteous,"- meaning, one

who creates in the Good an Anxious urge to be the best among the

righteous and virtuous. This pride is their protection from

compromising in even in a small way in any act. This is a

positive `pride' of the higher order. There is also a reading of A-

darpadah when the meaning would be: "One who never allows his

devotees to become proud." In this way, devotees would totally

surrender unto him all their virtues, acting on purely as His agents,

are feed by him from bondage of spiritual pride. For such pride,

resulting from a preponderance of Sattva guna and sense of doership,

would make them vain-glorious of their goodness.

 

714. Driptah –One who is ever drunk with the infinite Bliss of his

own essential nature as Sat-chit-Ananda.

 

715. Durdharah –the object of contemplation which is indeed very

difficult to attain: -the one who is realized by yogis through radios

process of intense, single pointed contemplation. Lord Krishna in

Bhagavad Geeta admits: "Greater in their trouble whose minds are set

on the unmanifest; for the goal, the unmanifested, is very hard for

the embodied to reach."

 

716. A-paraa-jitah –"The Unvanquished.Never-Conquered" is the

Glory of the self, for, conquering is of `objects'; the `subject' can

be conquered. This, being the reality in all, the senses, mind, etc.,

including the faculties (Devas) can never reach or conquer him. Even

when the mighty senses and the terrible Asuras fight against it,

still this over whelming powers of desires and passions can never

vanquish the self, the divine Narayana.

 

Stanza 77

 

visvamoortirmahaamoortirdeeptamoortiramoorimaan

anekamoortiravyaktah satamoortih sataananah.

 

 

717. Visvamoortih –"Of the form of the entire universe." Lord as the

total – created, so his form is called Visvaroopa. The total gross

form of the universe to be gather represents his gross-form-divine.

 

718. Mahaa-moortih –the great form divine of the lord as he reclines

upon the sesha couch as the very support for the creator to bring

into existence the universe of the forms and plurality. The entire

universe and the creator of the universe are but an aspect of Sree

Narayana, the Supreme Self.

 

719. Deepta-moortih –"Of the Resplendent Form." As Consciousness, He

is never bright and fully effulgent illuming all experiences at all

times. Sanjaya reports: "If the splendour of a thousand Suns were to

blaze out at once in the sky, that would be like the splendour of

that Mighty Being."

 

720. A-Moortimaan –"Having no Form." Though He is described above as

Deepta-moorti: "of the resplendent Form"; Mahaa-moorti: "of great

form"; Visva-moorti: "of the universal-Form" – He has, in

reality, "No-Form"; A-moortimaan. He pervades all, but nothing limits

Him. The limited alone has a form-the unlimited, like `Space', has

no form. The Infinite Brahman being so subtle. "Subtler than the

subtlest." Sree Narayana as the Self-in-all, allows everything to

remain in Him, but He is not conditioned by anyone of them. ever.

 

721. Aneka-moortih –"Multi-Formed": One Who Himself has become the

world of varieties of Forms -Who has Himself taken the various

Incarnations in order to help the world of beings to evolve quicker

and fuller.

 

722. Avyaktah –"Unmanifest." Things are called manifest when they can

be perceived by the sense- organs. As the Self. The Consciousness in

us. Sree Hari is the very faculty of seeing. Hearing, smelling,

tasting and touching in the five sense-organs. He being, thus, the

very subject. He cannot at the same time be the object of the sense-

organs. Hence. He cannot be defined or described.

 

723. Sata-moortih –"Of Myriad-Forms": even though Consciousness, like

Light, has no form of its own, all thought and the thought-projected

world of infinite forms are all illumined by the Supreme. Therefore,

the Self, functioning through the fluctuations of the restless

mind "creates" the illusion of forms-all those forms as His, just as

all dream- forms are created by the waker's mind only.

 

724, Sataananah –"Many-Faced": because He is of the Universal-Form,

all faces are His only. "Hands and feet everywhere, with heads and

mouths everywhere, His ears everywhere, stands (The Lord). enveloping

all"

 

 

 

Stanza 78

 

eko naikah savah kah kim yattatpadamanuttamam

lokabandhurlokanaatho maadhavo bhaktavatsalah.

 

 

725. Ekah –"The One. The One-without-a second." As the Infinite is

without any of the three distinctions, He, Sree Narayana, the

Brahman, can only be the One without any otherness.

 

726. Naikah -"The Many." One who, though the One, yet plays in the

bosom of all the living creatures. Just as we are one entity, but our

thoughts are many, the Supreme Consciousness, Sree Narayana, though

One, His reflections as `Jeevas' play in all mind-intellect-

equipments. Because He is thus seen to be manifested in the world of

plurality, He is "Not One." Again, "The One" is a definition, a

quality. The Lord is Indefinable, quality-less (unqualified). Hence

after making the student grasp that He is "The One," where the

pluralities are all merged, the teacher is immediately pointing out

that He is "Not even One" For, to conceive "The One" is to conceive

the Truth with our intellect-He is to be experienced on transcending

the intellect. "The One" has a meaning only with reference to the

many. "The One" is a relative statement. To show that the Infinite is

to be "experienced" by the "becoming" and not by "knowing," the

teacher has negated "Not even One." Sruti says "The Lord sports with

many forms by His Maayaa."

 

 

 

727. Savah -"He Who is of the nature of the Sava-Sacrifice." The

sacrifice in which the Soma juice is squeezed out is called Sava.

 

728. Kah –"Happiness." One who is of the Nature of Bliss. Since He

transcends the body-mind-intellect-equipments, which are the seats of

sorrow, in Him there can be only Bliss. Or Kah means a question: He

Who is ever a "question without an answer" to the human intellect-He

who can be experienced only on transcending the intellect and not

apprehended through intellection.

 

729 Kim –"What." Since the Lord is the final Goal to be reached, Ho

is the On, Who is to be enquired into or diligently sought through

constant questioning upon What is His Nature Also because the Truth

is realised through this process of enquiry and discrimination-the

final Goal of all "What" enquiring-the Lord, is termed here

a, "What," (Kim).

 

730 Yat –"Which." The pronoun "Yat" means "that which is self-

existent" Hence in the Upanishad, we find the usage of this term

frequently. It may also be noted that the pronoun "Which" (Yat)

denotes an already existing object Thus the Self-existence of the

Supreme Reality, independent of the existence and non-existence of

things in the world is indicated when Lord Sree Hari is termed

as "Which."

 

731 Tat –"That." The Supreme is indicated by this term in all the

Upanishadic literature, and one of the Mahaavaakya is "That Thou Art"

Here "That" means the Truth that is not comprehended now, but is to

be apprehended through listening to the Teacher (Sravana),

reflections upon what you have heard (Manana) and meditation

(Nididhyaasanaa). In Geeta, Bhagavan says "Om Tat Sat" are the three

designations of Brahman" Or again, the term Tat can mean, "That which

expands all the world of plurality:"

 

732 Padam Anuttamam -"The Un-equalled Stare of perfection The Supreme

State of Truth." Lord Vishnu is the Way and the Goal and the very

pilgrimage. "He than whom there is no Higher."

 

733. Loka-bandhuh –"Friend of the World." Everyone is inextricably

bound to Him in His Love Infinite, and He is the Father to all. Since

there is no well-wisher or friend dearer than one's own Father, He is

the One unfailing sure Friend of the world of beings and things. The

Lord serves for the uplift of the world whenever the creatures come

to suffer sorrows created by their own immoral negative ways.

 

734. Loka-naathah –"One Who is the "Lord" of the World," or "One Who

is `solicited' by the world of beings for the fulfilment of all their

desires and needs. Or it also means, "One Who `adds glory' to the

world. There are also interpretations for the term `Naath' which

express " shines, praised by or loved by": in all these different

meanings, Sree Hari is described as the Lord of the World Lokanaatha.

 

735. Maadhavah –"One Who was born in the family of Madhu." The

Vaisaakha-month is called Maadhava- month because the Lord is the

Spirit of Beauty behind the Spring and its regal lush.

 

736. Bhakta-vatsalah –"One Whose Love for the devotees knows no

bounds." He is ever merciful and endlessly kind towards His devotees.

 

 

 

Stanza 79

 

suvarnavarno hemaango varaangaschandanaangadee

veerahaa vishamah soonyo ghritaaseerachalaschalah.

 

 

737. Suvarna-varnah –"Golden Coloured" is Sree Narayana for He is, in

the devotee, the pure Self; and in all, He is the very All-Illumining

Pure Awareness. Mundaka Upanishad declares: "When the Seer sees Him

of Golden- hue." Upon witnessing the Self-Effulgent (Golden) Being,

the seer's realization is completely transforming, and "then that

wise one, shaking off all deeds of merits and demerits, becomes

stainless, and attains the supreme State of Equipoise."

 

738. Hemaangah –"One who has limbs of Gold." The description of the

Lord functioning through the orb of the Sun is well-known: Hiranmaya-

"of pure-golden- form." Sruti mentions it: "This Golden Person seen

in the disc of the Sun"… This same Upanishad insists further

that "Mind is Brahman" and the "Sun is Brahman." Lord Hari, as the

Infinite Brahman, plays in the Sun (Soorya-Narayana)- thus the term

is most appropriate.

 

739. Varaangah –"With beautiful limbs." Also, Vara can take the

meaning "lovable," therefore, Sree Narayana is described here as "One

whose form (limbs) is supremely "lovable" to the yogi-of-devotion."

 

740. Chandanaangadee -This is made up of two terms, "Joy-giving"

(Chandana) and "armlets" (Angada). Thus the phrase means "One who has

attractive armlets." It can also be used as describing "One Who is

smeared with the sandal."

 

741. Veerahaa –"The destroyer of the valiant heroes"-in order to

uphold righteousness, Lord Hari takes His Incarnations and destroys

the intrepid and daring Asuras in battle. Again, it may be

interpreted as One Who destroys the powerful and mighty forces of

likes and dislikes-Dvandva -pairs of opposites, the hosts of our own

negativities in our hearts.

 

742. Vishamah –"Unequalled." Arjuna, in Bhagavad Geeta, estimates his

experience of the Lord's Cosmic Form and says: "None there exists who

is equal to You; how can there be then another superior to You in the

three worlds, O Being of unequalled power?"

 

743. Soonyah –"The Void." Here Void means the total absence of (a)

the equipments-of-experiences-the body-mind-intellect; (b) the fields-

of-experiences-the objects- emotions-thoughts; © the experiencer-

attitudes-the perceiver-feeler-thinker personality. In Brahman, the

Pure Consciousness, all these three (a, b and c) are totally absent

as the devotee of Hari transcends them all. So the Lord, in His

Infinite Nature, is `without attributes;' seemingly then, He is

the "Void." This is not "non-existence" of the Buddhists. This is

Pure Existence without the object-emotion-thought world-the Self,

Sree Narayana.

 

744. Ghritaaseeh –"One Who has no need for any good wishes from

anyone." The Infinite Lord, perfect and transcendental, has no need

for any of the objects of the world to make Him complete since the

state of incompleteness is indeed the springboard for all desires to

gush forth. It can also mean one who has eaten away the ghee stolen

from the cow-herds' store-rooms in Brindavan.

 

745. Achalah –"The non-moving." Either it can signify One Who never

falls and therefore does not move away from His own Infinite nature,

or it may mean that since the Lord is All-Pervading, He cannot move

as there is no place where, at any time, He is not. He is Ever-

Present everywhere.

 

746. Chalah –"Moving." By the juxtaposition of these two opposite

qualities, we are reminded that the apparent world of plurality that

constitutes the realm of change is also nothing other than the

immovable Atman interpreted through our personal equipments of

experiences. Unconditioned by the body, mind and intellect, the Lord

in His Infinitude is motionless, but as conditioned by the vehicles

He apparently seems to move. We have already explained this

relationship earlier. It is something like a traveller, though

himself sleeping, is able to travel all the night since he is

conditioned by the vehicle which carries him.

 

 

 

Stanza 80

 

amaanee maanado maanyo lokasvaamee trilokadhrik

sumedhaa medhajo dhanyah satyamedhah dharaadharah.

 

 

747. Amaanee –"One who has no false vanity." Since He knows His own

real divine nature, He has no false identifications with the

equipments of not-Self such as the flesh, the emotions or the

thoughts.

 

748. Maanadah -"One who gives, or causes, by His Maayaa the false

identification with the body." The Sanskrit term `maana' can also

mean `honour,' and therefore, `maanadah' can mean One who honours all

His true devotees. The root `da' in Sanskrit means `blasting', and

therefore, the same term can also mean one who blasts all false

notions from the bosom of his devotees.

 

749. Maanyah –"One Who is to be honoured." He is the most worshipful

as He is the very material Cause for the world of plurality. Bhagavan

Sankara says: "If he, who has realised the Supreme, is so blessed and

to be honoured in this world," how much more worshipful is the Lord

who is the very substratum and support of the whole universe and by

whom all are blessed and inspired to gain their experiences in the

world of things and beings!

 

750. Lokasvaamee –"Lord of the Universe." Here the word `loka' in

Sanskrit means `field-of-experience.' The One Who is the Controller,, Who is the Lord and Governor of all fields-of-experiences

of all living creatures, at all times, everywhere, is the

Consciousness that illumines matter. Therefore, the term Loka-svaamee

is extremely appropriate.

 

751. Thriloka-dhrik –"One Who is the support of all the three

worlds." Apart from the usual concept of the three worlds: heaven,

earth and hell, there is a deeper import of the term `loka'. It

should mean the three fields of experience constituted of waking,

dream and deep sleep. Atman, the Self, as Consciousness, is the One

that supports all these three states inasmuch as, without this

kindling support of life in the bosom, it would be impossible for us

to have any experience.

 

752. Sumedhaah –"One who has Pure Intelligence." In fact, the term

may denote a special power in the human intellect which is the

capacity to remember and repeat what has been once experienced

before. As such, the term indicates that the very nature of the Self

is not a knowledge newly gained, but it is only a remembrance of the

seeker's own real nature, which the seeker in his earlier confusion

had forgotten. So long as we have not invoked this great power of

memory of our real nature, we shall continue to grope in our sorrows

created by our misconception. On realising the Self, it is not that

we gain anything new, but we re-discover our own essential Self.

Naturally, therefore, with reference to our present forgetfulness,

the ultimate goal is indicated by the pregnant term `Divine Memory

Power.

 

753. Medha-jah –"Born out of sacrifices." `Medha' means sacrifices

like Asvamedha Yajna. In such a sincere and great ritual, He is

invoked and in His Pure Presence there in the sacrifice, we can say

He is born. The Geeta meaning of `sacrifices' (Yajna) is "a co-

operative endeavor wherein: -we offer our capacity into a field of

chosen work invoking in It the unmanifested Lord Who pours forth His

blessings in terms of profit." In this sense, when all the

personality layers are offered in an act of total surrender, the

spiritual experience of the Self is born. To the student of Vedanta,

the term is rich in its suggestiveness.

 

754. Dhanyah –"Fortunate." As He has no objects yet to be fulfilled,

or any of His wishes not already fulfilled, He is indeed one who is

utterly fulfilled. The state of the Self is an eternal state of total

contentment.

 

755. Satyamedhah –"One whose intelligence never fails." He is the

supreme Power of Discrimination, never deluded by the finite world of

appearances, but is, in all circumstances, ever rooted in the Truth

that He alone is the world of multiplicity.

 

756. Dharaadharah –"The sole support of the earth." The earth here

stands for matter; and the very essence from which matter has come to

express itself, both in its gross and subtle forms, is the Self,

Narayana, and therefore, He is considered as the very substratum for

the play of matter (earth). Geographically, the earth is supported by

water. Water is supported by the atmospheric air and the atmospheric

air by the space. The daring enquirer may still continue the question

and investigate into the source of space. We know that the space is a

concept which we experience in our intellect. All experiences of the

intellect are established in Conscious- ness and, therefore, the

ultimate support for the entire `world' is the Supreme Narayana.

 

 

 

Stanza 81

 

tejovrisho dyutidharah sarvasastrabhritaam varah

pragraho nigraho vyagro naikasringo gadaagrajah.

 

 

757. Tejo-vrishah –"One Who showers Radiance." In the outer cosmos

the Sun gives out heat and light, and because of this, rain and

cultivation are possible-not directly because of the Sun, but due to

the sum-total-result of an endless chain of cause-effect links. In

the same way, He Who by His mere presence illumines the experiences

of all living creatures with His Light, is Sree Narayana, the Self.

 

758. Dyutidharah -The term `Dyuti' indicates the glow of beauty and

strength in a form; thus the term means "One Who bears an Effulgent

Form." The expression also discloses that the seat of Pure

Consciousness is described as "the Bearer of Radiance" for it is in

the light of the Atman that creatures become aware of all their

perceptions, emotions and thoughts.

 

759. Sarva-sastra-bhritaam-varah -"The best among those who wield

weapons." Since Sree Narayana is described in the Puranas as wielding

the Discus (Sudarsana), it, being the greatest of all weapons,

justifies this term. Also, the Lord never uses His weapon of

annihilation indiscriminately-for He is ever supremely just. It is

also significant that all destructions in nature are

always `constructive destructions', therefore the Lord's Discus is

itself called "the auspicious vision" (Sudarsana). In the maturity of

one's evolution when one becomes fit for one's own inner unfoldment,

slowly, but irresistibly the seeker can ever detect a secret hand

that diligently cuts off all his connections with the outer world,

and compels him to lean more and more on the higher. Our Puranic

literature is replete with instances, and, without exception, in all

of them Sree Narayana is described as using His weapon to destroy the

devilish-and to give him Moksha! –"the Auspicious Vision": Su-

darsana. Others, when they employ their weapons of destruction, the

result invariably end in a sad `destructive destruction', and,

therefore, to invoke Him as "the best among those who wield weapons"

is most significant for a seeker.

 

760. Pragrahah -One who is the sole receiver of all the worship of

every devotee, irrespective of his creed or race, or his location in

the world, at all times. The devotee may invoke the spiritual

presence in various institutions, using different symbols, believing

in his own creed and scripture, but, whoever he be, when he comes to

transcend his vehicles of perception, feeling and thinking, the

experience of the Self (God) should be universally one and the same-

as God is All-Pervading and Changeless. This great factor-

transcendental IS the Self, Sree Narayana, and therefore, He is the

ultimate, sole Receiver of all prayers that rise consciously or

unconsciously in every heart, be it from a plant, an animal or a man.

 

The term `Pragrahah' is used in Sanskrit to mean the reins with which

horses are controlled and their movements regulated. In this sense

when we reflect, the metaphor of the chariot In the Upanishad

suddenly comes in front of us. In this famous scriptural metaphor,

mind is the rein by which the steeds of the sense-organs are

controlled and regulated. Here Lord Sree Narayana Himself is invoked

as `Pragrahah' because when the mind has turned in devotion to His

feet, the devotee need not strive to control his sense-organs, but

the Lord's own glory shall imperceptibly do the job for His beloved

seeker. There- fore, a truly devoted heart in its utter surrender,

calls the Lord ``as the very controller of his sense-organs."

 

761. Nigrahah –"The killer." An uninitiated student may get shocked

when he finds that the Lord is invoked as a murderer! But it is true.

The only difference is that He is only the destroyer of the ego-just

as a doctor is a `murderer' of diseases; just as the sun is the

destroyer of the night; as summer is the annihilator of winter.

Similarly, the Lord is the destroyer of ego and ego-centric

limitations in the devotee. In Sanskrit this word also indicates "One

who absorbs the devotee unto Himself." Once an individual withdraws

himself even a wee bit from his total pre-occupation with the world

and turns his attention to the spiritual centre in himself, the Lord

fascinates and enchants the seeker's attention more and more to His

own Infinite Glory, and ultimately "absorbs (Ni-grahah) the

individual totally into the state of Pure-Consciousness.

 

762. Vyagrah –"One Who is ever engaged in fulfilling the devotee's

desires." Desire arises in the human mind due to a sense of

imperfection in oneself. In the absolute sense of bliss and peace,

which is the true nature of Sree Narayana, there cannot arise any

desire and, therefore, He is described as "the fulfiller of all

desires."

 

763. Naika-sringah –"One Who has many (na-eka=Naika) horns." To a

modern student it would look fantastic and even foolish should one

worship his Lord, the God, as One with many horns. This mental shock

can even stun him when he understands also that his Lord has three

legs: "Chatvaarah Sringaah Trayo Asya Paadaah," says the Maha

Upanishad. If the literal translation shocks the student, the very

jolt prods him to a more vigorous enquiry. The four horns mean the

four States of Consciousness-the waking, dream, deep-sleep and the

fourth plane of consciousness, the Pure Awareness. The three feet

(paada) indicate the three states of consciousness in which we now

revel in our gross, subtle and causal bodies respectively.

 

764. Gadaagrajah -"The elder brother of Gada." Lord Krishna had a

younger brother whose name was Gada. The term Gada has also the

meaning in Sanskrit of `mantra.' Mantra are chanted and therefore

Gada can indicate `mantra, -"Gadyate iti gadah." A commentator

insists that Ni-gada means mantra, but the prefix Ni gets dropped, so

Gada means mantra. Naturally, "Gadaagraja" would mean One who

manifests or is invoked through mantras.

 

 

 

Stanza 82

 

chaturmoortischaturbaahuschaturvyoohaschaturgatih

chaturaatmaa chaturbhaavaschaturvedavidekapaat.

 

 

765. Chatur-moortih –"Four-Formed." The Lord, the Infinite is

considered as having four forms-meaning that He, in His

manifestations in the world, takes these four forms.

 

The Puranas have declared that the incarnations of the Lord in the

various Yuga, were of different colours: white in Krita Yuga, red in

Tretaa Yuga, yellow in Dvaapara Yuga and dark (black) in the Kali

Yuga. But according to Vedanta, the Lord, the Self, has four distinct

expressions in the subjective life of each individual: the Waker, the

Dreamer, the Deep- sleeper and the Pure Self. In the microcosm these

are called as Virata, Taijasa, Prajna and Tureeya, and in the

macrocosm, the Lord's complete expression, in the total gross, subtle

and causal bodies, is called as Viraat, Hiranyagarbha, Eesvara- and,

beyond all bodies as the Eternal Paramaatman.

 

766. Chatur-baahuh -Lord Narayana is represented as having four

hands. These represent the four factors that together constitute the

inner equipments in man- mind (Manas); intellect (Buddhi); thought

flow towards objects (Chitta) and ego (Ahamkaara). These are the four

agents by which all the physical activities are controlled, regulated

and constantly commanded from within the body.

 

767. Chatur-vyoohah –"One Who expresses himself as the dynamic centre

in the four Vyoohas. A "Vyooha" is a whirlpool of activities made by

a large number of imperfected forms, commanded by a pivotal person

who remains in the centre of the whirlpool-just as a battalion

functions under the orders of its commander. It is shown in this

analogy that the Lord, the central Source of all activities, is

manifest as the universal Force which blesses every engagement and

contact of a living man with his outer world. In the Aitareya

Upanishad, the four Vyoohas (or persons) are mentioned: the person in

the body, the person in the Chhandas (Vedic mantra), the person in

the Vedas and the Great Person.

 

768. Chatur-gatih –"The ultimate goal of all the four." Though their

means and purposes appear divergent, Sree Narayana alone is the

inevitable goal of all activities of the four types (Varnas) of men:

Thinkers (Braahmanas), Rulers and Leaders (Kashatriyas), Men of

Commerce (Vaisyas) and Workers (Soodras). The Lord, also, is the

consummate goal to be achieved by the four stages (Aasramas) of life:

the Age of Study (Brahmacharya), the Householder (Grihastha), the

Retirement (Vaanaprastha) and the Stage of Renunciation (Samnyaasa).

 

769. Chatur-aatmaa -There is also a reading as Chatvaraatmaa. In the

former reading, the definition suggests "the clear-minded"-meaning

the Lord is one who is completely free from desires, passions,

vanities, in short, free from all maladies of ego in His essential

Nature. In the latter term, the meaning signifies that Sree Narayana

is the one Infinite Effulgence which expresses Itself as the four

aspects of our inner equipment (Antahkarana Chatushtaya).

 

770. Chatur-bhaavah –"The Source of the four." One who is the Source

for the four types (varna), for the four stages-of-life (Aasrama) and

the four human aspirations (purushaartha). The human aspirations as

codified by the Sanaatana Dharma are again four in number.

Righteousness (Dharma), Wealth (Artha), Pleasure (Kaama) and

Spiritual Liberation (Moksha). Lord Krishna reveals in the Bhagavad

Geeta: " All the four types in creation have come from Me."

 

771. Chatur-veda-vit –"Knower of all the four Vedas." The Lord is the

very theme discussed and expounded in the four vedas. The student of

the vedas when he realises the Lord, then only he fulfils his study

of them. In this sense of the term, Bhagavan proclaims in the

Fifteenth Chapter of Geeta: "I am verily that which has to be known

in all the Vedas: I am indeed the author of the Vedas and

the "knower" of the Vedas am I."

 

772. Eka-paat –"The one-footed." The term `paada' in Sanskrit has two

meanings: a `part' and a `foot." The Lord, in Bhagavad Geeta, uses

the first meaning to describe His mighty Glory: "The whole universe'

is supported by one part of Myself." There is a reference in the

Taittireeya Aaranyaka which clarifies the latter meaning: "All beings

are His foot." The significance here is the ~me as in Geeta-wherein

even the totality of all universes cannot be compared to Him, the

Infinite Absolute Existence.

 

 

 

Stanza 83

 

samaavarto-anivrittaatmaa durjayo duratikramah

durlabho durgamo durgo duraavaaso duraarihaa.

 

 

773. Samaavartah –"The efficient turner' -of the wheel-of-life. `

Aavarta' is to turn. The wheel-of-life- and-death, the samsar, is

constantly being churned by the Law, which is none other than the

Lord. The Law and the Law-Giver are one and the same in this universe-

Sree Narayana.

 

774 Nivrittaatmaa –"One whose mind is turned away from all sense

indulgences." The famous `two birds' of the Mundaka Upanishad strike

a simile here. "Two birds bound one to the other in close friendship,

perch on the selfsame tree. One of them eats the fruits of the tree

with relish, while the other looks on without eating," The latter is

the Nivrittaatmaa, Some commentators have taken the word as' A-

nivrittaatmaa' in which case the meaning would be: "One who never

turns away from anything, but enters into every- thing." as the very

Self is every thing and every being-that Supreme One, Lord Narayana.

 

775. Dur-jayah –"The Invincible"-One who cannot be conquered by

anyone else. Even though, in the majority of us, there is a

preponderance of the lower urges, in the patient grinding of time,

the evolutionary goal ultimately wins and irresistibly pushes each

one of us towards the altar of the Self. Battles may be lost but the

war in the end is won by the Lord of our heart.

 

776 Durati-kramah –"One who is difficult to be disobeyed:' This term

declares a truth which is proven upon observation of this

scientifically precise world where no object or being dares to

disobey the Lord, the Cosmos The Rishi in Kathopanishad says "through

fear of Him the Fire burns, through fear of Him shines the Sun,

through fear of Him functions Indra, Vaayu, Lord of the Wind, and

Death itself is the fifth"-as though He is behind each one with

uplifted thunderbolt. The term `Atikromah' means `going beyond',

therefore the term, as it stands, indicates "a state beyond which no

one can go"-meaning Sree Narayana is the final and the absolute

destination of all evolution He is the transcendental Reality and

other than He there is no more a beyond to he achieved

 

777. Dur-Labhah –"One who is obtained with consummate effort." The

final destination of all evolution is He, the spiritual perfection.

Therefore, He is only gained after millenniums of slow evolutions,

from the insignificant unicellular existence to the status of man,

and the fulfilment of man's evolved, rational life is the state of

Godhood. The reward for all the slow and steady efforts of evolution

is bestowed when an organism reaches the height of the rational human

being; and, thereafter, through selfless, dedicated service, deep and

individual devotion, and sincere and serious study of the scriptures,

man learns to remove his mind from all his worldly pre-occupations

and brings himself to finally realise his divine Godhood. Indeed, the

state of Narayana- Consciousness is an experience that is to be

obtained with consummate effort.

 

778. Dur-Gamah –"One Who is realised with great difficulty." In

Bhagavata there is a statement that the Lord is easily obtained (A-

dur-gamah). For those who have not already developed extreme

meditative abilities in their devoted hearts, the processes of self

development, when studied from a book or heard from a teacher, the

immediate reaction in the bosom of such students will be that it is

very difficult. But as he marches forward in his saadhanaa he gains

the further guidance and inspiration to `go-forward.' More bounteous

aspects on him beam and the `kindly light' leads him safely to the

goal through all obstacles. A candle or torch can at best light up

only ten or fifteen yards in front of a traveller. It can never

illumine the whole path of one or two miles at a stretch. He has to

start and proceed as far as he can see and as he marches ahead the

forward stretches will be illumined.

 

779. Dur-Gah –"Not easy to storm into." The term is used in Sanskrit

to indicate a fortress; therefore the suggestion is that the essence

of the Lord, Sree Narayana, is fortressed around by the matter

vestures and their objects of fascination. Attracted by them, our

attention is always distracted towards the joy contents in them. This

seducing power of the matter vestures is itself the mighty Maayaa,

which only very rare, courageous and blessed ones are able to cross

over.

 

Bhagavan Himself says: "Mama My Duratyayaa…." The Upanishads say that

the truth, Narayana, cannot be perceived by the senses, imagined by

the mind or thought of by the intellect. These being the only source

of our knowing, it almost impossible to realize the Truth. It is only

an all-out suicidal attack that enables some rare ones to storm the

fort and reach the Goal. Hence to an extrovert man, the seat of

Consciousness apparently seems to be impenetrably fortified. The

direct meaning here indicates the great Lord seated in our heart who

is "not easily realized."

 

687. Punyah –"The truly–Holy." When the devotee's heart is filled

with remembrance of the glorious from divine and infinite nature and

supreme of the lord Vishnu, he then, in that very moment, removes all

sin from his devotee's heart. The lord is Auspiciousness itself, so

where he is invoked, all inauspiciousness must immediately retire.

 

688. Punya-keertih –"Of Holy frame." He is gloriously renowned as the

holy one. Whoever glorifies him becomes himself holy. All the unholy

animal passions in the devotee are routed and beaten back when his

heart is wholly in tune with the lord's Glory and Form.

 

689. Anaamayah –One who has neither the mental or physical diseases.

Of pure unstained divine essence is his nature. He is not involved in

karmas, thus the resultant of the karmas which visit us in terms of

mental restlessness or physical pangs, never touch Him.

 

 

 

Stanza 84

 

manojavasteerthakaro vasurtaah vasurpradah

vasuprado vaasudevo vasurvasumanaah havih.

 

 

 

690. Manojavah –Fleet as the mind is the Lord's movement. He is

anxious to run and reach the devotee to remove his suffering and

ignorance. All-pervading is the lord, thus he is faster than all

those who run after him – and wherever they reach, the supreme, He,

in the form of existence, is already there.

 

691 Teerthakarah –"The Teacher of the Teerthas" The term, Teertha"

means vidyaas. Sree Narayana is the author of the Vidyaa, or

auxiliary Sciences Therefore, "One Who is the most ancient Teacher of

all Vidyaas and Tantras."

 

692 Vasuretaah –"He Whose Essence is Golden." In the beginning of

Creation were the primeval waters Into this One Ocean the Lord

dropped His Essence and it became a Golden Egg from which Brahmaa,

the Creator, first arose Thus Lord, as the womb of all Creation is

mentioned in the Puranas as "Hiranyagarbha," the Golden Womb

 

693 Vasupradah –"The Free-Giver of Wealth" Inn this context, Vasu

means "Worldly-Wealth"- money, property, grains, possessions, progeny

Lord Vishnu who nourishes and maintains all beings with the wealth of

His consort, Sree Laksmi, distributes and patronises His devotees

very liberally

 

694. Vasupradah -Again, the same term as we read above, but here if

means "The Giver of Salvation" Liberation (Moksa) is the greatest

wealth-whom He chooses, Moksha is gained by him alone.

 

695. Vaasudevah –"The son of Vasudeva," Lord Krishna. Or "One Who is

Vaasu and DevaVaasu" means "One who dwells in all creatures as

their ego-centric individuality (Jeeva-raopa)." `Deva' means "One who

revels" Therefore, this name for Lord Krishna has the appropriate

meaning "One who revels in every living creature as the Jeeva-entity

in each".

 

696 Vasuh –"The Refuge for all." The One Who dwells within, veiled

behind Maayaa, the mind The mind projects this play of things,

beings, emotions and thoughts. The world is the shadow-show round the

Pure Consciousness Lord declares in Geeta: "I am the beginning, the

middle and also the end of all beings." Thus He alone is the Refuge,

for there is no other existence. "All have emerged out from Me, exist

in Me and must come back to Me."

 

697. Vasumanaah -One who is attentive to, and, therefore, concerned

with every object and being in this world: "Omnipresent."

 

698. Havih –"The Oblation." That which we offer unto Him is also

permeated by Him-there is nothing other than He, Himself, the same

everywhere, in all places, at all times. In Geeta, Lord insists that

the "oblations" are nothing but Brahman."

 

 

 

Stanza 85

 

sadgatih satkritih sattaa sadbhootih satparaayanah

sooraseno yadusreshthah sannivaasah suyaamunah.

 

 

 

699. Sadgatih –"The goal of good and noble seekers." Lord Narayana is

the Spiritual Goal to be reached. "The Good" here means those who

know the existence of Brahman, for the Upanishad says: "If a person

knows `Brahmaji exists,' then the wise call him `good."

 

700. Sat-kritih –"One Who is full of Good Actions." Lord Hari is the

One Who maintains the rhythm of creation and the logic of its

preservation. Even through His destructive activities, there is

creation only for the sake of the individual and for the good of the

world. All His actions are totally in harmony for the establishment

of Peace.

 

701. Sattaa -The Lord is the "One without a second," and, therefore,

remains ever the same, without any differences of genus, species or

in Itself."

 

702. Sad-bhootih –"One Who has Rich Glories." The term `Glories'

means wealth, power, happiness Or "One who has taken different kinds

of Incarnations," exhibiting in all of them the glories of the

Supreme. So immeasurable are the Lord's Glories that even all these

splendours scarcely reveal His Divine Might. Him, whom even the Devas

know not; only the Yogis in meditation come to perceive His Eternal

Glory.

 

703 Sat-paraayanah –The Supreme Goal for the "Good" who pursue the

path of Truth. Here the "Good" means those who are the Knowers of

Brahman.

 

704 Soora-senah –"One who has heroic and valiant armies" The

Incarnations as Rama and Krishna are indicated here in whose armies

there were valiant people like Hanuman and Lakshmana, Arjuna, Bheema

and others.

 

705. Yadusreshthah –"The Best among the Yadava clan." The Glory of

the Yadavas-Lord Krishna, Who was an Incarnation of Sree Hari.

 

706. Sannivaasah –"The Abode of the Good." The great souls of

realisation come to live in Him, the Self; drowned in God-

Consciousness, they beam out from that Abode their divinity all

around. Bhagavan in Geeta says: "My devotee thus knowing (realising

the Truth, the jneyam, seated in the heart of all) enters into My

Being."

 

707. Suyaamunah -One who is attended by the righteous Yaamunas-

meaning Gopas who live on the Yamuna banks. In a metaphysical sense,

these Gopas are not the keepers of `cows,' but the keepers of the

sacred milk of Knowledge-Upanishads.

 

 

 

Stanza 86

 

bhootaavaaso vaasudevah sarvaasunilayo-analah

darpahaa darpado dripto durdharo-athaaparaajitah.

 

 

 

708. Bhootaavaasah –"The very dwelling place of the Great

Elements.Since the Beings (Elements) dwell in You, You are

called `Bhootaavaasa,' " so says Harivamsa. Bhagavaan Himself says in

the Geeta: "I am the Source of all Creation." Therefore He is also

called the `Bhootayoni.'

 

709. Vaasu-devah -One who envelops the world with His Maayaa-powers

of veiling and agitations. The Lord discloses: "I pervade the whole

world with My Glory, as the Sun with its rays."

 

710. Sarvaasu-nilayah –"The Abode of all Life-Energies." One who is

the very Substratum for the life and existence of all creatures. He

is the Self, the Life in all of us-therefore, He is the very support

for the Praana in each living creature.

 

780. Dur-aavaasah –"Not easy to lodge" –within the heart steadily for

even great seekers who are diligent in their consistent pursuit. To

withdraw the mind from the objects of pleasure and to steadily

contemplate upon the great seat of Life is not an easy

accomplishment. Therefore, even yogins, in their persevering

meditation, find it not easy to contemplate steadily upon Sree

Narayana, hence this name. "This Yoga of equanimity, taught by Thee,

O slayer of Madhu, I see not its enduring continuity, because of the

restlessness (of the mind)," cries Arjuna in the Geeta. Bhagavan also

adds in the same Chapter that the meditation should be "As a lamp

placed in a windless place does not flicker."

 

781. Duraarihaa – "One Who is the slayer of the devilish Asuras."

Even in those among us who are not steadily good, the Lord, when

invoked, out of His compassion destroys the devilishness and redeems

our personality from its sad consequences. The asuric tendencies are

in the bosom of every seeker and devoted invocation of the Lord in

our bosom can cleanse the heart of all its negative tendencies.

Therefore, it is indeed appropriate that He is significantly

indicated as `Duraarihaa.''

 

 

 

Stanza 84

 

subhaango lokasaarangah sutantustantuvardhanah

indrakarmaa mahaakarmaa kritakarmaa kritaagamah.

 

 

782. Subhaangah –"One with enchanting limbs of perfect beauty." The

Beauty of all beauty is the Lord, and His captivating form and the

rhythm of His shape are the theme of meditation for the devotees. In

the Upanishads the Infinite Lord, the Self, is described as Peace-

Auspiciousness-Beauty (Saantam-Sivam-Sundaram). Thus the devotees of

the Lord, remembering the auspicious beauty of His sacred limbs,

prostrate at His altar in their deep reverence and mounting joy of

devotion.

 

783. Lokasaarangah –"One who has enquired into or understood the

Essence behind the universe of names and forms" Or, Lokasaarangah can

mean the essence, or the source, of the world which is the great

Pranava, `OM.' So the term means the State of Supreme Consciousness

that is gained or reached through the contemplation upon the

significance of OM.

 

784. Sutantuh –"Beautifully expanded." Just as the thread is drawn

out in different counts from cotton which is later employed as the

warp and woof in the creation of infinite varieties of cloth, so too,

from the Narayana-Consciousness, the endless variety of beings and

things gets projected to constitute the enchanting tapestry of His

mighty universe. As the thread is the substratum for all the various

fabrics, the Narayana is the beautiful thread, the-substratum, for

all this wonderful universe. The Lord Himself says: "There is nothing

whatsoever higher than I, O Dhananjaya. All this is strung on Me, as

clusters of gems on a string.

 

785. Tantu-vardhanah –"One who sustains the continuity of the drive

for the family." The family is maintained by the virility of the

members and this potency in the individual is an expression of

vitality which Life imparts to the living organism. Thus, the grace

of the Self is that which is manifested in the fertility of the seed

(Ojas). Generally in India, among the Hindus, it is customary to

attribute the continuity of the family to the Grace of Narayana.

 

786. Indrakarmaa –"One who always performs gloriously auspicious

actions" The root `Id' is used in the sense of Supreme

Auspiciousness, Parama-aisvarya.

 

787. Mahaa-karmaa –"One Who accomplishes Great Activities." To

create a cosmos so scientifically precise and perfect out of the five

great elements, and to sustain them all with an iron hand of

efficiency, all the time constantly presiding over the acts of

destruction without which the world of change cannot be maintained,

is, in itself, a colossal achievement of an Absolute Intelligence.

 

788. Krita-karmaa –"One Who has fulfilled all His activities." There

is nothing more for Him to achieve. He is the Goal. He is the

Destination. In His Eternal Perfection there is nothing more for Him

yet to achieve. This sense of complete fulfilment is described in all

the scriptures as the State of Blissful Perfection-the Self.

 

789. Kritaagamah –"One who is the author of the Vedas." The vedic

mantras are called Aagamah. The mantras were revealed to the great

Rishis during moments when they were not identified with the Body-

Mind- Intellect and, therefore, they were not, at those inspired

moments, limited individual egos. Where the ego is thus ended, the

Self-alone comes to manifest. In this sense of the term, all

scriptures have burst forth from prophets and seers when they

transcended their limited existence to experience their oneness with

the Eternal, Sree Narayana, In Bhagavad Geeta also, Lord Krishna

confesses, "I am the author of all the Vedas; I alone am the knower

of the Veda."

 

 

 

Stanza 85

 

udbhavah sundarah sundo ratnanaabhah sulochanah

arko vaajasanah sringee jayantah sarvavij-jayee.

 

 

790. Udbhavah –"The ultimate source"- the very spring of Creation. In

the Puranic view of the term, it may mean One Who has by His own free-

will manifested Himself by Himself for the service of mankind, or, it

may designate subjectively, the Self, Sree Narayana, as the one

dynamic Witness in Whose Presence alone the vital activities of life

gush forth into expression.

 

791. Sundarah –"Of unrivalled beauty." In almost all religions the

Infinite Lord is described as one having the most enchanting beauty.

When we experience beauty in the world, we are moved to consider its

beauty either by the pro- portion or the symmetry, or th~ tender

charm in the object of observation. Within the mind of the observer,

there reflects for a moment the rhythmic grace in the proportion, the

smooth peace in the symmetry, or the joy of ecstasy which ripples out

from the object into the contemplative eye. In all these conditions,

the observer's mind, sensitive to the aestheticism in him, quietens,

and, it is at such moments of supreme inner satisfaction, the flashes

of "beauty-experiences" floods the bosom. Remember, beauty is not in

the object nor is it in the mind. The enchanting occasion silences

the mind that is now available for the aesthetic reaction which

resultingly fills the observer- and this is nothing but the

manifestation of That which is behind the mind, Sree Narayana. Hence,

the Infinite Reality is glorified in the Upanishads as "Peace-

Auspiciousness-Beauty'. ( Saantam-Sivam-Sundaram} .

 

792. Sundah –"Of Great Mercy." Whatever be the amount of vaasanaas

hoarded in our personality, due to our ego-centric, extroverted

activities, once a devotee turns unto Him in total surrender, all the

vaasanaas are purified and he comes to move more and more towards Him-

as though, in infinite mercy, He forgives all sins that a man might

commit in his innocent ignorance (Avidyaa).

 

793. Ratnanaabhah –"Of beautiful navel." Text books of Bhakti-cult

advise devotees that they should meditate upon the Lord's navel-

point, as a flashy, brilliant jewel (Ratna). This point of

concentration is not without significance. The mystics of India long

ago explored the percentage of human action that is grossly manifest

at the physical level. Today also, psychologists confess that they

have no other knowledge beyond the obvious fact that thoughts express

themselves as actions. But deeply meditative mystic enquirers delved

deeper to detect and chart the story of actions. In their adventurous

explorations, they discovered that in seed form all thoughts are with

the Infinite (Para) before manifestation. From this womb they become

manifest and an individual becomes dimly aware of thoughts in their

embryo form-vague and still incompletely un-formed (Pasyantee).

Thereafter, the thoughts get translated into expressions (Madhyamaa)

and in their last full stage of manifestation they come to express

themselves as actions in the outer world (Vaikharee).

 

In this chain of processes when thoughts become manifest for the

thinker, it is said the seat of Pasyantee-stage is the navel region.

This brilliant seat of nascent manifestation of all thoughts is

indicated here as "the jewel of his navel." Generally, the

intelligent student would readily jump to the conclusion that this

truth is merely a poetic exaggeration, but there is a deep

significance in it indeed.

 

794. Sulochunuh –"One Who has the most enchanting eyes." The term

indicates the beauty of the Lord's eyes for those devotees who turn

to the Lord's form. To the deeper students of contemplation, the eyes

are great not be- cause of their form, colour or expression, but

because of their ability to see constantly the infinite purpose and

goal of the entire creation. Therefore, the term means. "One who has

the wisdom of the Self."

 

795. Arkah -"One Who is in the form of the Sun." The Sun is

worshipped as a Vedic deity, even by the Creator Himself-hence, the

term suggests `most worshipful.' The Sun-centre of the solar system-

is the one source of light and energy illumining and nourishing

everything. The Infinite Consciousness, Sree Narayana, is the Sun by

Whose Splendour the experiences of all people are illumined, at all

places and at all times. He, as the One Life, thrills all living

creatures and presides over, in and through their nurture and

nourishment. Once He has left from therein, that body cannot be

maintained -though we witness today the experiments of medical

science to do so.

 

796. vaajasanah –"The giver of food." The one Vital Force that

ultimately sustains, supports and nourishes all living creatures in

the Universe is the Supreme. and Its Nature is not really different

from the Lord, Sree Narayana. In the Bhagavad Geeta the Lord

describes Himself as manifesting through the sun as the sunlight

which penetrates the earth to fertilise it. The fertility of the

soil, in turn, becomes the plant on the surface into which the Lord

transfuses the food value of the vegetable world by the essence of

moon- light from the moon. Further, in the Upanishads, we find

indicative declarations that offerings, given in the worship of Fire

themselves come down as a reward in the form of rain and plenty for

the society.

 

Again, it is a law of life that each individual is supplied with the

exact type of `equipments for experiences' and each one also finds

himself in the precise environmental circumstances for their

expression according to the texture and type of vaasanaas in him.

Thus, in the larger sense, the entire world of `emotions-feelings-and-

thoughts' constitute the total food (Annam) for the experiences of

the body, mind and intellect.

 

797. Sringee -"The horned one." This is generally commented upon as

reminiscent of the Lord's Incarnation as a Fish. It would have been

happier had it been reminiscent of the Boar-Incarnation which Sree

Narayana took to lift up the world from its slushy condition to the

plane of dry-surfaced earth.

 

798. Jayantah –"The conqueror of all enemies." No force could ever

vanquish Him who is `the Source of all energy and strength'-the

Almighty. Sree Narayana is acclaimed as the conqueror, because it is

by His Grace and direct help that the gods always win against

the `diabolically bad' (the Asuras). In our bosom it is the grace of

the mind and intellect, in attunement with the Self, that helps us to

conquer our lower impulses, our endless desires for the sensuous-and

our craving for the cruel pleasures of indulgence.

 

799. Sarvavij-jayee –"One Who is at once Omniscient (Sarvavit) and

victorious (Jayee)." The term, however, is not two words and,

therefore, as a single expression, we can also understand it to

mean, `One who is victorious over all men of wisdom.' Prattlers of

wisdom, however eloquent in their discussions, must become utterly

silent in their moments of Samaadhi, in the presence of the Self,

Sree Narayana.

 

 

 

Stanza 86

 

suvarnabindurakshobh yah sarvavaageesvaresvarah

mahaahrado mahaagarto mahaabhooto mahaanidhih.

 

 

800. Suvarna-binduh –"With limbs radiant like gold." Chhandogya

Upanishad declares: "He, having a golden body, even to the tip of his

nails." The great name of the Lord in the Vedic literature is `OM'

which consists of the sounds `A', `U', and the bindu `M.'

 

801. Akshobhyah –"One Who is ever unruffled." Ordinarily an

individual gets disturbed, subjectively, by the presence of desires,

anger, passions, etc., and objectively an average man is constantly

stormed by the enchanting dance of beautiful sense-objects all around

him. Lord, the Self, is a state of existence wherein neither the

subjective disturbances of the mind, nor the objective persecutions

of the sense-organs can ever reach to ruffle the quietude and

peaceful grace of His perfection. In describing the state of the

Sthitaprajna, Bhagavan says in the Geeta that such a one will be

Akshobhya like the ocean: "He attains Peace into whom all desires

enter as waters enter the ocean, which filled from all sides, remains

unmoved; but not the `desirer-of-desires."

 

802. Sarva-vaageesvaresvarah –"The very Lord of the Lord of Speech."

In the Kenopanishad it has been made amply clear that it is not the

instruments of actions and perceptions that act by themselves as they

are all made up of inert matter. The immediate animation to the

equipment is given by the `inner instruments.' Therefore, for all the

sense-organs, the mind-intellect-equipment is their immediate Lord.

But these subtle instruments themselves get their dynamism to act

only in the presence of Sree Narayana, the Consciousness. Therefore,

it is most appropriate to invoke Him as the Lord of Lords in all

living creatures.

 

The term Vaageesvara (Lord of Speech) is often used in the language

to indicate poets, writers and orators. Therefore, the term can also

be interpreted as `the Lord from whose altar all ordinary speakers

draw their powers. Theologically, some commentators have spun a

meaning out of this term indicating that Sree Narayana, as the

Absolute Reality, is the `Lord' of even the Creator .

 

803. Mahaa-hradah –"One Who is like a great refreshing swimming

pool." In the hot summer season, plunging into the cool crystal

waters of a. pool holds the swimmer in a refreshing cool embrace on

all sides. Similarly, the plane of Narayana-Consciousness revives,

refreshes and en- thralls all meditators when they plunge into its

reviving quietude. The Yogins often plunge into It from the

springboard of their devotion, and after a time emerge out of It-

cool, clean and refreshed. Sree Narayana is metaphorically addressed

as the great (Mahaa) pond (Hradah).

 

804. Mahaa-gartah –"The great chasm." Here the `chasm' means the

Lord's maayaa which He Himself describes, in the Bhagavad Geeta

as "My Maayaa (non-apprehension and the consequent misapprehension)

is very difficult to cross over." The industrious lexicographers

enter here and additionally press out of this word garta the

meaning, `chariot,' and, therefore, the term can also mean that He is

a `mahaaratha' (Great Chariot).

 

805. Mahaabhootah –"The Great Being." He is the Source from which

even the Great Elements spring forth into existence and, therefore,

in His Infinitude and Pervasiveness, Lord Narayana is

called `Mahaabhootah.' The entire play of birth and death, of

integration (sanghaata) and disintegration (vighaata) are taking

place in Him Who is the mighty substratum and, therefore, it is very

appropriate that the Lord, the God, is considered by the devotees as

the "Great Being.'

 

806. Mahaa-nidhih –"The Great Abode.The Eternal Source from which

everything springs forth and the Infinite substratum upon which the

entire play of the finite is held in animated suspension." The

term `nidhi' means `treasure' and, therefore, its indication here is

that Sree Narayana is the richest treasure of all His devotees-to

loot at will!

 

 

 

Stanza 87

 

kumudah kundarah kundah parjanyah paavano-anilah

amritaaso-amritavapuh sarvajnah sarvatomukhah.

 

 

807. Kumudah –"One Who gladdens the earth," or "one who gets

gladdened by the earth." Earth here should be understood as the

entire cosmos ever so dynamic and scientifically precise. The world

of plurality is Narayana's joyous expression of His infinite

potentialities. It is the fulfilment of the Omnipotent.

 

808. Kundarah –"The one who tore the earth in His Incarnation as the

Boar in order to destroy the mighty tyrant, Hiranyaaksha. It can also

mean: Darah(one who wears); Kum (the earth). The term is further

commented upon as "One who bestows rewards as beautiful as the Kunda

flowers."

 

809. Kundah -Here we read it as `Kunda flower.' In this context the

term means "One who is as comely and attractive as the kunda

flowers." In Harivamsa it is said that the Lord, as Parasuraama, in

order to atone for the battles he had fought, gave (do) gifts of this

earth (kum) to Rishi Kasyapa. ` Ku' also has the meaning of

the "rulers of the earth," and `do' means "slaying." In this way the

term indicates the "one who had taken the Incarnation of Parasuraama

to destroy the unreasonably vicious tyrants of the land."

 

810. Parjanyah –"He who is similar to the rain-bearing clouds." Lord

Krishna has been described as being so gloriously hued. Again,

agriculturists and all living creatures are extremely happy when they

see these clouds-the harbingers of comfort and prosperity. To the

devotees, the Lord is a total fulfilment, as the clouds are for the

parched earth.

 

811. Paavanah –"One Who ever purifies." The impurities of a

personality are gathered when the mind and intellect, in a natural

impulse of animal voluptuousness, rush towards the sense-objects with

ego-centric passion. To I retrieve the mind from the sense-objects

and to peacefully let it settle in contemplation of the divine nature

and the eternal J glory of Sree Narayana, the Self, is to exhaust all

the existing vaasanaas, which are the personality-impurities within.

 

812. Anilah -Like the atmospheric air the Lord is the life-giver

everywhere, and also He is All-pervading. Nilah also means `to slip'-

into a condition of non-apprehension: thus, one who is ignorant

(avidya). When the symbol of negation, `a', is added to it, `A-nilah'

comes to indicate "One who slips not, but is ever of the nature of

Consciousness." Hence it means "Omniscient."

 

813. Amritaasah -Since `amrita' has both the meanings of `nectar'

and `immortality,' the term is interpreted to mean "One whose desires

are never fruitless," as well as "One whose greatest desire is for

the State of Immortality."

 

814. Amrita-vapuh –"He Whose Form is Immortal." He, the Eternal

Reality, is unconditioned by time. This principle of Consciousness,

functioning as the flame of life in every bosom, by its mere presence

has in Itself neither the physical, subtle nor causal bodies-which

alone are the perishable. Transcending them all-unconditioned by

time, and, therefore, never undergoing any of the natural

modifications of mortality, Sree Narayana revels in His Absolute

Glory.

 

815. Sarvajnah –"Omniscient." It is only when the light of Awareness

illumines the happenings that living creatures can become conscious

of their experiences. To know the outer and the inner world of

happenings, they must be lighted up by the principle of

Consciousness. This seat of Sree Narayana is, therefore, called the

Pure Knowledge- the Principle, because of which all other knowledge

is possible in every being.

 

816. Sarvato-mukhah –"One Who has His face turned everywhere"-just as

the light in the sun, or the light of a lamp. In the Bhagavad Geeta

He is described as having eyes, heads and faces on all sides.

 

 

 

Stanza 88

 

sulabhah suvratah siddhah satrujit satrutaapanah

nyagrodhodumbaro-asvatthaschaanooraandhra-nishoo-danah.

 

 

817. Sulabhah –"One who is readily available" and, therefore, easily

attainable for those who have true devotion and the heroism to put

forth the right effort in unveiling Him from the miserable pits of

matter. To the mind in contemplation, the Reality is self-evident;

all saadhanaas are only to render the mind contemplative.

 

818. Suvratah –"He Who has taken the most auspicious Forms"-to

destroy the evil and to protect the good is the motive behind all His

manifestations. The seeker himself is one of the Lord's own

manifestations; thus, every spiritual/ student will ultimately

realise that to destroy the ego in himself and finally gain back the

very state from which he apparently manifested is re-discovery of the

Self.

 

819. Siddhah –"One Who is Perfection"-not one who has attained

perfection. Sree Narayana, the Absolute State of Perfection, can

never, even when He is playing as the Incarnation, forget His real

nature of Eternal, Unbroken, Unchanging Perfection.

 

820. Satrujit –"One Who is ever victorious over His hosts of

enemies." In the bosom of man, his enemies are none other than

consciousness of his body and the con- sequent passions of the flesh-

both objective and subjective. The seeker feels that these urges in

him constitute a very powerful team of belligerent forces, and

against their concerted onslaught he feels helpless. But when such an

alert seeker turns himself towards the Truth, the Lord Who is in his

own heart, all obstacles whither away. It is natural then that Sree

Narayana is invoked here as the "Supreme Conqueror of all Enemies."

 

821. Satrutaapanah –"The Scorcher of enemies." When the devotee

offers himself at the altar of His Feet, He burns down all the

negative tendencies polluting the devotee's heart.

 

822. Nyagrodhah –"The One who, while controlling all beings, veils

Himself behind this Maayaa." The Consciousness constantly functions

within us, but due to the Vaasanaas, our attention is constantly

distracted to the perception of objects outside and not to the

Effulgent Being which is the core in us. At the same time Sree

Narayana, the Self, is the very Life which has made possible the

entire manifestation of the world. Still, by His own playful

inscrutability we recognize Him not. Interpreted in another sense,

the term can also mean, "He who is above all.' The nobler, the

mightier power which controls and regulates any organised set of

activities, when it is conceived by human intellect, it is always

expressed as something higher or above. Therefore, the significance

of this term must be clear to the students.

 

823. Udumbarah –"He Who is the Nourisher of all living creatures"-

supplying each with its appropriate food. The term also

suggests: "one who transcends even Aakaasa, the subtlest of the

manifested elements." Sree Narayana, the Source out of which all

creatures have emerged, He alone must also be the Great Cause from

which even the subtlest element, Aakaasa, (space) has sprung forth.

The cause is subtler than the effect, therefore, the essential

principle, Narayana, transcends even the concept of space.

 

824. Asvatthah -In the Upanishad, (Kathopanishad) and in the Bhagavad

Geeta (Chapter XV), Lord Narayana is indicated as the great "Tree of

Life," the Asvattha. Ficus Religiosa is a perennial tree, seemingly

relatively immortal, as compared with the quickly-perishing mankind

that comes in waves, generation after generation, to play under its

shade, to make love at its base; to grow old in its breeze. Even when

they are dead, their bodies are carried in moonlit procession to the

burial ground, where under the tree's dancing leaves, a play of light

and shade splashes a wizardly pattern upon each lifeless face. The

children of each departed one, in their turn, repeat the unending

cycle of life under the shade of the same old tree whose nodding

grimace mocks the procession of fleeting joys and sorrows. This tree

has been chosen to represent the finite play of the Infinite and the

Tree itself has been named: A-svattham meaning: "That which will not

remain the same tomorrow."..

 

825. Chaanooraandhranishoodanah - "The slayer of Chaanoora, the great

wrestler. Andhra means wrestler."

 

 

 

Stanza 89

 

sahasraarchih saptajihvah saptaidhaah saptavaahanah

amoortiranagho-achintyo bhayakrit bhayanaasanah.

 

 

826. Sahasra-archih –"He Who in His Effulgence has thousands of

rays." The Self, Sree Narayana, the Pure Consciousness which

illumines all experiences, is considered in our scriptures as

the `Light of all Lights,' and, in the Geeta's famous description of

this mighty Effulgence of Reality we read: "If the Splendour of a

thousand suns were to rise up together and at one and the same time

blaze forth. In the sky, that would be like the Splendour of the

Mighty Being."

 

827. Sapta-jihvah –"He Who expresses Himself as the `seven tongues'

(flame)." `Jihvaa' means tongue; here it is used as the `tongues-of-

flame.' These seven flames of different properties are enumerated in

the Mundakopanishad. It sets forth the idea that the Light of

Consciousness beams out through seven points in the face of a living

entity-two eyes, two ears, two nostrils and the mouth. As intelligent

beings, powers of perception metaphorically flame out through each

one of them, illumining the world for us. The one in our heart, Sree

Narayana, Who totally manifests as the seven distinct tongues-of-

flame is classified here by the scientific-poets, the Rishis, in the

language of lyrical service as Sapta-jihvaah.

 

828. Sapta-edhaah –"The Seven Effulgent flames." The earlier term

invoked Him as the "Seven tongues- of-flame." Here the emphasis seems

to be for the Effulgence in those flames.

 

829. Sapta-vaahanah –"One Who has the vehicle of seven horses." Lord

Sun is described by the poet-seers of the Vedas as riding in a

chariot drawn by seven horses, representing the seven days of the

week.

 

830. A-moortih –"One Who is formless." `Form' implies a thing that is

limited by other factors. The All-Pervading cannot have a form-just

as space has no particular form. All things having a form are

perishable. Narayana who is Infinite and Eternal is thus ever

Formless.

 

831. Anaghah -The Sanskrit term Aghah means sin or sorrow. Therefore

the term means one who is sinless or sorrowless. Lord Paramesvara,

the Self, is Immaculate-untouched and uncontaminated by the

Vaasanaas. He is Eternal Bliss-beyond all traces of sorrow.

 

832. Achintyah –"One Who cannot be comprehended by man's mind and

intellect." Not only the Lord is Formless, and consequently

Imperceptible, but He is also unavailable as an object for our

emotional experience, or for our intellectual appreciation. He is the

Pure Conscious- ness in Whose Light all our perceptions, feelings and

thoughts are illuminated. In Geeta, this "Nourisher of All" is

compared with the changeless white screen upon which all the

perishing scenes of life are focused.

 

833. Bhaya-krit -Lord is the "Giver of fear." He is a terror to the

evil-minded. In all His Incarnations, He gives fear to the evil-

hearted, that they may ultimately be swayed to the path of Dharma.

 

834. Bhayanaasanah –"Destroyer of all fear," is the Supreme Lord. The

Upanishads repeatedly -declare the State of Self-Knowledge to be the

only state of absolute fearlessness. From a sense of otherness or

plurality alone can fear spring forth. In the One Reality, where

there is no other, how can there be fear? Sree Narayana alone is the

only harbour from all fears.

 

 

 

Stanza 90

 

anurbrihat krisah sthoolo gunabhrinnirguno mahaan

adhritah svadhritah svaasyah praagvamso vamsavardhanah.

 

 

835. Anuh –"The Subtlest; the All-pervading." Sree Narayana is the

subtle flame-of-life in our bosom, the Essence from which all life's

activities spring forth. He is called as Anuh because He is in the

centre of even the Subtlest. Bhagavan Himself says: "I am seated in

the heart of all-as the core or Essence in all."

 

836. Brihat -At the same time He is Greater than the Greatest in

dimension, He being the All-pervading. These two may seem paradoxical

but the apparent contradiction dissolves into an illumining

experience for the contemplative mind. The Upanishad daringly

combines these two terms to give the students a vague comprehension

of the All-pervading Infinitude of the Self.

 

837. Krisah –"One Who is lean; subtle; delicate." Again, this

description will be opposed by the next following one, for herein is

a deliberate use of contradictions. The Rishis made an art of

effectively employing terms of contradiction in order to bring the

incomprehensible within the cognition of the students of

contemplation.

 

838. Sthoolah –"One Who is the fattest; the grossest; roughest."

These two terms are indicating opposites. Here it is to be understood

that the Lord, in His state as Pure Consciousness, is the subtlest,

and He is the grossest in the form of the Universe (Viraat).

 

839. Gunabhrit –"One Who supports"- maintains and expresses through

the three Gunas. Through rajas He creates; through Sattva He

preserves and through tamas He annihilates. He, as Consciousness,

expresses Him- self through these three textures of vaasanaas.

 

840. Nirgunah-"Without-any-properties." That which has property is

matter-perishable, changeable, finite. The Imperishable, the

Changeless, the Infinite is property-less; it is the Consciousness

that illumines all properties (Gunas). With the matter equipments, in

His Incarnations He manifests as having `form' (Guna-bhrit), and in

His Absolute Nature He is `form-less'-the Non-dual Self.

 

841. Mahaan –"The Great; the Glorious; the Mighty.One who is not

conditioned by the five Elements- nor by Time and Space. Quite on the

other hand, it is He Who is the very Existence in everything.

 

842. Adhritah -None supports Him, but He supports all. Just as the

cotton in cloth, gold in ornaments, mud in pots, He is the supporter

of the entire universe. To the devotee who feels the Lord is far away

from him, to contemplate upon Sree Narayana as his very own support

will open his heart to the certainty and plenitude of faith.

 

843. Svadhritah –"Self-supported." When from the previous term we

hear that the Self is he ultimate support of the Universe, the

question automatically rises in a rational intellect: `what supports

the Self?' The Lord is "supported" by nothing else other than His own

Glory. In the Upanishad, in answer to a question where the Mighty One

abides, the teacher declares, "He abides in His own Glory."

 

844. Svaasyah –"One Who has an Effulgent Face." Because He gives to

the Vedas their beauty and charm, He is conceived as brilliantly

beautiful, enchantingly fascinating, hauntingly charming.

 

845. Praag-vamsah –"One Who has the most ancient ancestry." The

Infinite, the Cause for the universe and Time itself, is indicated as

the `Most Ancient'. The term can also mean the accommodation reserved

during a Yaaga meeting where the invitees and guests may rest.

Generally built on the eastern courtyard of the house~ this

accommodation is called `Praagvamsah.' Since everything connected

with a Yajna or Yaaga is considered as sacred, the `Praag-vamsah' has

been used here as a name to indicate Sree Narayana.

 

846. Vamsa-vardhanah –"He who multiplies His family of descendents."

The Lord's family is the whole Universe of things and beings. Or it

can also imply just the opposite as the root Vardh means `the

annihilator.' Narayana is the sacred factor in us, to Whose Feet we

turn in all love and undivided attention, in Whom the world of

perceptions, emotions and thoughts merge as a dream merges into the

mind of the waker.

 

 

 

Stanza 91

 

bhaarabhritkathito yogee yogeesah sarvakaamadah

aasramah sramanah kshaamah suparno vaayuvaahanah.

 

 

847. Bhaara-bhrit –"One Who carries the load of the Universe." This

carrying is not as a man would carry a load-something other than

himself. The Self Itself has become the world so here it means only

that Narayana is the very material Cause of the Universe.

 

848. Kathitah –"One Who is glorified in the Vedas and other spiritual

text books." Narayana-essence is the theme of all scriptures in the

world.

 

849. Yogee –"One Who can be realised through Yoga:One Who is the

greatest Yogee." The term Yoga is defined in the Sastra as `stopping

all thought flow.' One who has no thought agitations-who has totally

conquered the mind( Maayaa) and lives in His own Effulgent Self-

nature is the greatest Yogee.

 

850. Yogeesah –"The King of Yogees.One who realises the Self,

becomes the Self," is an Upanishadic declaration. Therefore, Self

alone is the perfect Yogee and Sree Narayana, the Self, is the King

of all Yogees. The sense of agency-in-action and the sense of

enjoyership-in- experience is the ego (Jeeva-bhaavanaa). To end this

ego-personality is to rise to the awareness of the Universal

Consciousness, the Self. Sree Narayana, the Absolute Reality, alone

can be free-entirely and fully-from any involvement while being ever

in the midst of Samsar and its seething activities. Hence He is

glorified as the best among Yogees.

 

851. Sarvakaamadah –"One Who fulfils all desires of all true

devotees." Such devotees have no other desire but to reach, meet and

merge in Him. In this way the term would also indicate that He

destroys the chances of fulfilment of all unholy, sensuous and lusty

desires in the faithless.

 

852. Aasramah -Sree Narayana is the harbour, the sequestered haven

for all who are tossed about in the storms of life without and

within. For each one, the source of all strains is attributable

entirely to his functioning as a body-mind-intellect equipment. To

remain as the Self-the essential real nature of man-is to experience

the end of all stresses and strains. This state of Peace and Joy, of

Quiet and Bliss is Sree Narayana, the Lord of the heart.

 

853. Sramanah –"One Who persecutes the worldly people"-who, driven by

their hungers and passions, seek sense-gratifications. By the very

nature of the ephemeral sense-objects and the ever-changing

instruments of experience in us, the life of gratifications can only

yield exhausting fatigue and weary disappointments. This is the `Law'

and Sree Narayana is the `Law-Giver.' The Law and the Law-Giver are

but one in theology.

 

854. Kshaamah –"One Who destroys everything during the final deluge"-

He who prunes our agitations and shrinks our desire-prompted world-

projections.

 

855. Suparnah –"The Golden Leaf." In Bhagavad Geeta the world is

pictured as the Asvattha tree and its leaves are declared to be the

Vedas. The theme of the Vedas is none other than the Self, making the

term extremely en- chanting with its springs of suggestions.

 

856. Vaayu-vaahanah –"The mover of the winds." From fear of Him Fire

burns, Sun and Moon function, earth rotates, the Wind

moves....declares the Upanishad.

 

 

 

Stanza 92

 

dhanurdharo dhanurvedo dando damayitaa damah

aparaajitah sarvasaho niyantaa niyamo yamah.

 

 

857. Dhanurdharah -"The wielder of the Bow." In His Incarnation as

Sree Rama, He drew the great Bow as no one else ever could. Also in

the Upanishad there is the famous metaphor of the Bow with which the

arrow of the individuality is to be shot to strike and sink into the

goal. The Rishi of the Mundakopanishad explains that the `Bow' is the

OM (Pranava mantra). (The significance is clear.)

 

858. Dhanurvedah –"One Who declared the Science of Archery." The One

Who propounded the unfailing technique of OM -meditation for

realisation of the Self.

 

859. Dandah –"One who punishes the wicked." In Geeta, Bhagavan

declares Himself to be the policeman of the Universe. The term can

also mean the `Sceptre'-the insignia of king-ship. Sree Narayana, the

King of kings in the entire, limitless universe, holds the Sceptre of

total royalty.

 

860. Damayitaa –"The Controller." One who punishes the wicked,

destroys the sinners and thus regulates and cultivates life in the

universe, making it a garden for the blossoms of spiritual beauties.

 

861. Damah -That which is ultimately gained by the worldly

punishments-the final experience of Beatitude in the Self.

 

862. Aparaajitah –"The Invincible; One who cannot be defeated." The

Self ultimately asserts within every bosom from wherein the spiritual

values finally emerge victorious. The Self alone remains when all

else has been destroyed.

 

863. Sarvasahah –"One Who carries the entire Universe." The One Who

meets heroically all the enemical impulses of unspiritual lusts. He

carries the entire Universe as its very material Cause: as mud in

pots.

 

864. Aniyantaa –"One Who has none above Him to control Him." He is

the One Who has appointed all other controllers of the phenomenal

forces as the Sun, the Moon, Air and Waters.

 

865. Aniyamah –"One Who is not under the laws of anyone else." He is

the Law and the only Law- Giver. It is His hand that governs the

inscrutable and un- relenting laws of nature.

 

866. Ayamah –"One Who knows no death." He is the Eternal: how can He

know death? - the principle of death cannot act in Him. Within Time

alone there is change or death. The Pure Consciousness is That which

illumines the sense of time and so is beyond Time-beyond death.

 

 

 

Stanza 93

 

sattvavaan saattvikah satyah satyadharmaparaayanah

abhipraayah priyaarho-arhah priyakrit-preetivardhanah.

 

 

867. Sattvavaan –"One Who is full of exploits and courage." Supremely

adventurous, daring and heroic is Narayana-as witnessed in all His

actions during all His Incarnations.

 

868. Saattvikah –"One Who is full of Saattvic qualities." Quietude,

tranquillity, peace-these are some of the saattvic qualities. Sattva

is the creative-pause of the mind before it launches out into a burst

of creative thoughts and action. Full of inspiration and meditative-

poise is the Total-Mind, Sree Narayana.

 

869. Satyah –"Truth." That which remains the same in the past,

present and future is Truth. Self knows no change. It is ever in Its

own Nature in all the three periods Time.

 

870. Satya-dharma-paraayanah - Who is the very abode of Truth and

Righteousness." Satyam (Truth) is `truthfulness in thought, speech

and action. Dharma (Righteousness) is the injunctions regarding what

is and what is not the duty to be fulfilled.

 

871. Abhipraayah –"One Who is faced by all seekers marching to the

Infinite." Or it can mean, "One who merges the entire world of

plurality into Himself."

 

872. Priyaarhah –"One Who deserves all our love." Priya also expands

its meaning into: "things we are supremely fond of," therefore, the

term, as it stands, may be read: "One Who deserves to be worshipped

by His devotees with all that they are supremely fond of." As an

expression of our devotion we do offer to the Lord that which we love

the most in life.

 

873. Arhah -Narayana is the One Who de to be worshipped by all

devotees. He, being our very own self is the treasure-source of all

our devotion. Thus He does from us all our surrender, love and

reverence.

 

874. Priya-krit –"One who is ever-obliging in fulfilling our wishes" -

One Who is anxiously eager for the well-being of all devotees. But

the term can also yield just opposite meaning –"One who- destroys the

wishes or disturbs the well-being of the wicked and the faithless."

 

875. Preeti-vardhanah -The sense of drunken joy that arises in one's

bosom when one loves deeply and truly is called Preeti. "One who

increases Preeti in the devotee's heart" is Sree Narayana. The more

He is contemplated upon, the more His glories are appreciated,

thereby the more

 

 

 

Stanza 94

 

vihaayasagatirjyotih suruchirhutabhug vibhuh

ravirvirochanah sooryah savitaa ravilochanah.

 

 

876. Vihaayasa-gatih -The term Vihaayasa means pertaining to,

depending on, the space-aerial. Gatih means one who moves. Therefore,

in its totality, this name describes: "One who travels in space-

having the nature of the Sun, Soorya-Narayana."

 

877. Jyotih –"Effulgent with His own inherent Light." The Lord as

Consciousness is the `Light of all lights.' "By Its Light all are

brilliant: by Its Light all are illumined." Sree Narayana is the Self-

effulgent Atman, the Self.

 

878. Su-ruchih -The suffix `Su' indicates Auspiciousness (sobhana):

the term `Ruchi' is Glory or Desire. The Glory of Lord Narayana is

this world: it is His `desire' (sankalpa) that manifests as the

universe.

 

The Supreme Brahman, the Infinite Reality, functioning through

the `Total- Vaasanaas,' meaning the `Total-Causal- Body' (Maayaa), is

Lord, the Eesvara. So we are given the irrefutable scientific truth

in the Sruti-declaration that the universe is the `will' or `desire'

of Lord Narayana.

 

879. Huta-bhuk –"One Who receives and enjoys all that is offered into

the sacred fire during the Vedic Rituals- Yajnas and Yaagas." The

faithful may offer oblations invoking his own special Deity, but it

is the One Lord, Narayana Who receives them all, manifesting as the

particular Deity invoked.

 

880. Vibhuh –"All-pervading." Lord Narayana, the Self, is

unconditioned by time or space for He is the Eternal, the

Omnipresent. In His Absolute Nature, He is All-pervading as He is

unlimited by any conditionings.

 

881. Ravih –"One Who absorbs the vapour (Rasa) from everything." As

the Soorya-Narayana, Sree dries up everything in the universe.

 

882. Virochanah –"One Who shines in different forms." Whatever form

the devotee chooses for contemplation upon Him, the Lord manifests in

that very Form for the sake and joy of the devotee. Additionally it

may be interpreted as "One Who Himself manifests as the Sun and the

Moon and all other resplendent spheres in the Consmos."

 

883. Sooryah -The term etymologically means the One Source from which

all things have been born or out of which they have been delivered.

The Lord as the First Cause is the Womb of the Universe. On the

surface of the world it is the Sun that nurtures and nourishes all

living creatures. It must be noted that many of the Lord's names

indicate or are associated with the sun –as he is like the sun in the

solar System: the Centre around which the entire system revolves and

by Whose benign rays, as the `Orb-of-all Energies', He thrilling to

life the infinitude of creatures.

 

884. Savitaa –the one who brings forth, from Himself, the me Self

functioning through the sun is called savitaa.

 

885. Ravi-lochanah –"One Whose Eyes are the Sun." In the Upanishad

and the Geeta, the Viraat Form of the Lord (the Cosmic-Form) is

described as having for His eyes the Sun and the Moon.

 

 

 

Stanza 95

 

ananto hutbhugbhoktaa sukhado naikajoagrajah

anirvinnah sadaamarshee lokaadhishthaanamadbhutah.

 

 

886. Anantah –"Endless." One who is not conditioned by time and place

is Self. In His All-pervading nature He is immortal, and thus

Immutable.

 

887. Huta-bhuk –"One who accepts the things devotedly poured as

oblation into the sacred Fire." These oblations which may be in the

name or any devataa, are all received by Narayana in the form of that

devataa because He is the One Infinite Self Who plays in and through

all forms, worldly and heavenly.

 

888. Bhoktaa –The One Who enjoys the world of objects-emotions-

thoughts, through the equipments of body- mind-intellect is none

other than the Self expressing through these `instruments-of-

experiences' as the individuality-constituted of the perceiver-feeler-

thinker-ego.

 

The term Bhoktaa also means "One Who Protects" (the Universe)-as He

is the very material Cause for the entire world of names and forms.

 

889. Sukha-dah -"One Who gives the experience of Eternal Bliss to

the devotees at their final spiritual destination-Moksha. As the term

stands in the verse, some would read it-' A-sukha-da' in which case

the nominative would mean: "One Who removes all the discomforts and

pains of the devotees."

 

890. Naikajah -Na-'not'; Eka-'once'; Ja ,-born.' One who is born not

only once, but many times, in many Forms, to serve the devotees in

His different Incarnations. In fact, all births are all His

manifestations alone as he is the Spark-of-Existence in the Universe

of inert matter. Through all equipments He alone is the One

Consciousness that dances Its Infinite Glories.

 

891. Agra-jah –"The One Who was First-Born." Naturally, everything

came from Him alone; this Primordial First Cause is the concept of

God. That from which everything comes, in which everything exists and

into which all things can again finally merge-'That' is conceived as

God.

 

892. Anirvinnah –"One Who feels no disappointments"-Who has no chance

to feel disappointment as He is ever the totally fulfilled. The

agonising disgust with things that comes to a bosom when a burning

desire is unfulfilled is called Nirveda. One who has no Nirveda is

called Anirvinnah. He, being "Ever-full" and "Perfect," has no

desires yet unfulfilled or something yet to be fulfilled in the

future. Bhagavan declares this in Geeta: "There is neither anything

that I have not gained nor anything I have yet to gain."

 

893. Sadaa-marshee –"One who ever forgives the trespasses of all His

devotees" -One who is infinitely merciful and kind.

 

894. Loka-adhishthaanam -The one sole substratum for the entire

Universe of things and beings."

 

895. Adbhutah –"Wonder is He." The Geeta roars of this 'wonder,' and

the Upanishads assert that He and the teacher who teaches of Him, and

even the student who grasps Him are all `wonders.' " Wonder" is an

experience that comes to one whose mind and intellect are stunned by

the overwhelming experience of any given moment. The experience has

made the mind stagger, the intellect to halt-so that no feelings or

thoughts emanate from them. That moment of realisation is a moment of

total transcendence of the "inner- equipments,' so this term "Wonder"

is often used in our scriptures to point out the condition within at

the time of our Experience Infinite.

 

 

 

Stanza 96

 

sanaat sanaatanatamah kapilah kapirapyayah

svastidah svastikrit svasti svastibhuk svastidakshinah.

 

 

896. Sanaat –"The Beginningless and the Endless factor is He." Time

cannot condition Him. He, the Consciousness, illumines the very

concept of Time and Space. He was, is and shall ever be-He being

Changeless, Immutable.

 

897. Sanaatanatamah –"The most Ancient." It is from Him that the very

intellect springs forth and thereafter one of the concepts of the

intellect is Time. Therefore, He is the most' Ancient,' inasmuch as

He was already there to be aware of even the first experience of the

beginning of Time.

 

898. Kapilah -The Lord Himself, manifested as the great Rishi Kapila,

propounded the Saamkhya philosophy. In the Geeta, Bhagavan Sree

Krishna declaring His own Glory, describes Himself: "I am Kapila

among the great ones."

 

899. Kapih –"One Who drinks water" -by one's rays. The Sun it is that

dries up everything, evaporating the water-content contained on the

surface of the earth.

 

900. Apyayah –"The One in whom the entire Universe merges"-during the

great deluge when the Total- mind-the Creator-rests. The Supreme

Atman functioning through the Total-mind is the Creator, Brahmaaji-

each mind being ruled by its own vaasanaas. The Total-vaasanaas in

the Universe (Causal-Body) is Maayaa and the Supreme Self expressing

through Maayaa (the Total-Causal-Body) is Eesvara. Therefore, Sree

Narayana, as Eesvara, is the One into Whom the total world of

experiences merges when the Total-mind rests during the `pause'

between two busy cycles of Creation and involvement in the projected

world of thoughts-feelings-objects.

 

In the north this term is read as Avyayah where the meaning is

clear: "Immutable": and needs no explanation.

 

901. Svasti-dah –"One Who gives Svasti to all His sincere devotees."

A true devotee is one who has discovered his fulfilment in seeking

and gaining the Infinite Bliss that is Sree Hari. Naturally, he comes

to turn away from the realms of inauspiciousness. To the extent he is

able to move into the Hari-Consciousness, he is to that degree in the

Bliss- Experience. Therefore, the Lord is termed as the `Giver-of-

Auspiciousness.

 

902. Svasti-krit -As in many earlier terms which were preceded by the

suffix ` Krit,' here also, it expands into two meanings: "One Who

brings Auspiciousness" -or "One who robs all Auspiciousness." To the

seeker who is moving towards the Narayana-Consciousness, his

experience is of added joy and peace in life, but the one who seeks

only sense-gratification and so moves away from the Reality, to him

the experience is more and more sorrow, agitations, tears and

tragedies-total inauspiciousness. The indeclinable (Avyaya) Sanskrit

word `Svasti' means Auspiciousness.

 

903. Svasti –"One Who is the Source of all Auspiciousness" -as He is

Himself the Auspicious. In essence His Nature is Sat-Chit-Aananda so

there can be no cause for inauspiciousness therein. The individual

functions within the powers of His avidyaa and so is under the

infatuation of Maayaa, while the Lord rules over Maayaa and plays out

through Maayaa.

 

904. Svasti-bhuk -"One who constantly lives in His Experience a

perpetual sense of holy Auspiciousness"-as it is His very nature-

divine. It can also be interpreted as "One Who showers Grace and

makes His devotees constantly experience Auspiciousness in their

loving Narayana- centred hearts."

 

905. Svasti-dakshinah -Lord is ever engaged in smartly distributing

Auspiciousness. The word `Dakshinaa' has, apart from the meaning

of `gift,' also a meaning: "One who is efficient and quick."

Therefore, the term indicates that Sree Narayana quickly and

efficiently will reach His sincere seekers to give them the

experience of Auspiciousness which is the Lord's very nature.

 

 

 

Stanza 97

 

araudrah kundalee chakree vikramyoorjitasaasanah

sabdaatigah sabdasahah sisirah sarvareekarah.

 

 

906. Araudrah –"One who has none of the negative terrible urges and

emotions." The State of Perfection is a condition where the frailties

of the mortal heart can never remain. The Lord is One in Whom the

cruelties which rule the man of the world-likes, dislikes,

hatredness, jealousy and his other imperfections-can never abide or

even be contained.

 

907. Kundalee –"One Who wears the famous ear-ring called the Makara-

Kundala." The term Kundalee also signifies the `Serpent'-hence the

Kundalinee-Sakti-the `Serpent-Power'-the coiled mystic-glory lying

now inert, uninvoked at the base of the back-bone in the deep pelvic

region. Here the `Serpent' may be taken as the thousand- tongued

Ananta on whom Sree Narayana is described as ever reclining in His

Yoga-rest.

 

In all religions, `Serpent,' it seems, symbolises the `mind.' In

Hinduism it is true. Whether it is in Krishna's dance on the Kaaliyan-

Serpent, or Siva wearing as ornaments the Serpents (Bhooshana), or

Sree Hari resting upon Ananta-the idea is always the conquest of the

mind, the poisonous serpent.

 

908. Chakree –"He Who wears ever His Discus called Su-Darsana

(Auspicious Vision)." The Lord destroys with the Discus only the foul

and the low in us and the individual naturally gains the Experience

Divine, the Self.

 

909. Vikramee –"He Who is more daring than all others." The term is

also interpreted: "One who travels by air," as `Vi' means Bird.

Famous is the allegory that Lord Vishnu travels on the back of the

white-necked Eagle.

 

910. Oorjita-saasanah –"One who commands and administers with His

Hand." His commands in the scriptures advise us firmly what is right

to do and what are the destructive forces in each one of us. In case

man decides to disobey His Laws, He severely punishes him on all such

occasions. Disobedience of Laws is immediately followed by His loving

curative punishment. It permits no exceptions; accepts no excuses;

admits no circumstantial conditions.

 

911. Sabdaatigah –"He who transcends all words"-One who is

Indescribable. The Vedas themselves are but indications `pointing to

Truth' and are not explaining, describing or even defining Truth. The

Infinite and the Eternal Truth is beyond even the Vedas, beyond all

that can be gained through even the highest faculties of the finite

equipments (mind and intellect).

 

912. Sabda-sahah –"One who allows Him- self to be invoked by the

Vedic declarations." If, however, the Upanishadic declarations are

properly reflected and sincerely meditated upon, even though the

Vedas have failed to define Truth, their contemplative implications

can transport us into the realms of the Infinite Experience-Divine.

 

913. Sisirah -The term means winter, the cold season. In India it is

the cool season. Therefore, by suggestion, this name indicates that

the Lord is the `cool arbour' for those who are tortured by the heat

of Samsar.

 

914. Sarvaree-karah -The word Sarvaree means `night' or `darkness';

therefore, the term defines the Lord as "One Who creates darkness."

To the men of realisation, our world of sorrows and pains, of strains

and stresses, of worries and anxieties are unknown -while to those

who live in their ego-sense, to them the Real is unknown. ! The

unknown means `veiled in darkness.' The subtle meaning is clear now.

 

 

 

Stanza 98

 

akroorah pesalo daksho dakshinah kshaminaam varah

vidvattamo veetabhayah punyasravanakeertanah.

 

 

915. Akroorah –"Never-cruel." Cruelty comes from anger, and anger

rises from `desire'--craving or lust. Sree Narayana, the Fulfilled

and the All-Full, cannot have `desire' from which could come anger-

thus, naturally, never any cruelty. Generally this term is

interpreted as "One who is of the form of the Yaadava, Sree Akroora."

Akroora was a great devotee of the Lord upon whom were bestowed many

divine powers. "Wherever, there is any special glory in anyone, know

that to be a manifestation of a part of my Splendour," sings Lord in

Bhagavad Geeta. Thus the term is interpreted as the Lord Whose one

ray of glory was the Kamsa-employee, the Yaadava-Akroora.

 

916. Pesalah –"One who is supremely soft." In His Infinite Kindness

and Mercy, His Heart-divine is ever flowing out in love and

tenderness towards His devotees when they call out for help ardently

and lift themselves from their body-consciousness and ego-centric

life of sense-pursuits.

 

917. Dakshah -This term stands for the quality of `promptitude.' In

army training, the Sanskrit command Daksha is equal to "attention

alertness, vigilance and utter preparedness to act immediately with

supreme urgency." All these are implied in that pose of " Attention."

The Lord is `Daksha' in serving the world and in rushing to His

sincere devotees. Omnipotent and divinely Efficient in His Infinite

Smartness to reach and help all, at all times, everywhere, under

every circumstance is echoed in the charming suggestions of this

chosen term in the Sahasranaama of Sree Narayana, the Self in All.

 

918. Dakshinah –"One who is most liberal." The term' Dakshina' is

popularly used for the `gift' presented to the priests after a ritual

as their fee. This giving must be done in a spirit of large-hearted,

liberal charity-so that very large-heartedness of mind (Daakshinya)

itself is the Lord, as it is the opposite of selfishness and

attachment to the wealth which one possesses. "One who has Infinite

Kindness and Charity towards all good people and One Who is thus ever-

ready to liberally give away His endless Benevolence" is Sree

Narayana, the Dakshina.

 

919. Kshaminaam-varah –"One Who has the greatest amount of patience

with the sinners and forgiveness for their sins." Sree Narayana is

more patient than even the Earth which is generally pointed to as an

example of highest patience (Kshamaa). He exhibits supreme patience

with the evil-minded, with the tyrant, the foul and the fiendish.

Hiranyaksha, Hiranyakasipu, Ravana and others of this type were given

many fair opportunities to realise for themselves the folly of their

baser attitudes to existing things and their immoral ways of life. It

is only when no other method of treatment could cure them that the

Lord destroyed them in His infinite kindness.

 

920. Vidvat-tamah –"One who has the greatest Wisdom." There are wise

men in the world-each one also may be a master in his own subject.

The Lord, the very Consciousness illumining all bosoms simultaneously

everywhere, is the One Knowledge Absolute, the Knower of all

knowledge of all wise men. Omniscient-Infinite Truth is Sree Narayana

as He is Pure Knowledge by the Light of which all `Knowledge' is

known.

 

921. Veeta-bhayah –"One who has lost all fears." Fear can come only

from the sense of `other.' In Advaita Reality, there cannot be any

fear as He is the "One- without-a-second." The state of Narayana-

Consciousness is declared in all scriptures to be' Abhaya'-the

Fearless State.

 

922. Punya-sravana-keertianah –"One whose Glory when `heard'

(sravana) and `sung' (keertana) causes merits (punya) to grow in the

bosom of that devotee. This statement of fact is never investigated

deeply by students so they generally understand its superficial and

obvious meaning only.

 

By `hearing'-with attention-to the stories of the Lord- we must get

ourselves involved in the `listening' and thereafter we must reflect

upon the glories of the Lord (Bhagavat Guna) and thus expose

ourselves to those recreative thoughts. Not only is it sufficient

thus that we imbibe the qualities spiritual, but we must learn to get

ourselves committed to the life of God- centred activities. This is

called true keertana-singing His Glories. It is not to be a mere

noisy chanting of hymns, a mere muttering of mantras; we must teach

ourselves to allow Him to express through us. Our physical

activities, mental feelings and intellectual thoughts must all shine

forth the awareness of His Divine Presence that is in us at every

moment, every- where. The life of such a deyotee will itself become,

in its dynamic beauty, love and devoted tenderness, a constant

worship (poojaa), a continuous (akhanda) hymn chanted (keertana) in

praise of the Lord-of-the-heart.

 

 

 

Stanza 99

 

uttaarano dushkritihaa punyo duhsvapnanaasanah

veerahaa rakshanah santo jeevanah paryavasthitah.

 

 

923. Uttaaranah –"One who lifts us out of the ocean-of-change." We,

by identifying through our body- mind-intellect, with the changing

whirls of matter around us, assume to ourselves the changes and these

provide us, in their totality, the horrible sorrow of the mortal

finitude. On lifting our attention from the giddy changes in these

whirls of finite matter, when we fix it upon Him, the one

Consciousness that illumines all changes in all living creatures, we

get uplifted into a state of Immortality-Changeless, Blissful,

Supremely Satisfying. Hence, Sree Narayana is called as the `Up-

lifter,' the `Saviour.'

 

The `Taara-mantra' lifts us from the cesspool of sense living into

the serener climes of the lit-up peaks of peace and perfection.

 

924. Dushkritihaa –`Kriti' means actions; `Dush-kriti' means bad

actions. When actions are undertaken, prompted by sensuous desires,

they leave impressions (vaasanaas) and these always have a tendency

to make us repeat similar actions. When one turns the mind towards

Narayana,-the Self, he is emptied of his existing vaasanaas, so Lord

is indicated as the `destroyer (Haa) of the sins.'

 

925. Punyah –"Supremely Pure." One who purifies the heart of His

devotee-removing all his sensehunting vaasanaas of indulgence. Sree

Narayana guides the pure-hearted to the portals of the final goal,

the Higher Consciousness.

 

926. Duh-svapna-naasanah –"One who destroys all `bad dreams'." The

worst dream is the samsar. Perception of plurality is the horrible

dream of terrible pangs, consuming fears and drowning sorrows. Dreams

are explosions of the suppressions stored away in the subconscious. A

real devotee exists in utter surrender unto the Lord. When his life

is ever-centred in Narayana-smarana, in such total and humble

dedication he has no chance of earning these suppressions. Since his

sub-conscious mind is not loaded with half-digested thoughts and

unexpressed intentions, repressed desires and suppressed motives,

immoral passions and covetous inclinations, he has no fearful dreams

in his daily sleep. Ultimately each seeker will rise above his little

ego and its hungers and enters into the plane of Narayana-

Consciousness.

 

927. Veerahaa –"One Who ends the passage from womb-to-womb-the wheel

of birth and death." `Veera' means diversified ways, or one who

functions in innumerable fields in countless ways.

 

928. Rakshanah -"One who is the Protector of the Universe." Among

the Trinity, Vishnu is the Protector, the Sustainer of all the

created. "For the protection of the good, the destruction of the

wicked and the establishment of righteousness, He takes different

Incarnations."

 

929. Santah -This term, used in the plural number, indicates "the

good people." They are considered as "good" who have moral virtues,

ethical values, spiritual purity and scriptural knowledge. By using

the plural form here, the import is that the holy beauty of Sree

Narayana is found expressed in the glory of such a company of good

and saintly men.

 

930. Jeevanah –"The Life-Spark in all living creatures." The Flame-of-

Existence that warns an organism to life is the presiding

Consciousness Supreme, the Self. This Self is Narayana. "Permeating

the earth I support all beings by (My) energy; and having become the

juicy Moon I nourish all herbs"-is the declaration of Bhagavan.

 

931. Paryavasthitah -In all places, in all creatures, He dwells. He

is the final Factor-Divine beyond which there is nothing, and upon

which all else depends.

 

 

 

Stanza 100

 

anantaroopo-anantasreer jitamanyur bhayaapahah

chaturasro gabheeraatmaa vidiso vyaadiso disah.

 

 

932. Ananta-roopa –"One of the infinite forms." The endless variety

of forms constituting the world of objects are all projections in

him. They are in their essence nothing but himself. Just as the

entire spread –of –objects in a dream is nothing but the creation of

the single mind of the waker, and it is seen as many only in the

dream –plane –of –consciousness, so, too, the world of objects –

emotions-and –thoughts are all discovered as the Narayana –

Consciousness.

 

933. Anantasreeh –"One who is full of infinite Glories,One who is

full of Incomparable Powers," the main tree `powers' which the lord

expresses in the world are the `Desire Power' (Icchaa-sakti). These

are expressions of his Glory at our physical, mental and intellectual

levels. These are three manifestations of his `powers' and their

continuous interplay, together weave the fabric of the total dynamic

expressions of life in the world. The self, Sree Narayana, the one

spring –board for all these vibrant aspects of the life –He, the

Omniscient, is called "One of Infinite Forms."

 

934. Jitamanyuh –"One who has conquered anger" (manyuh). It cannot be

repeated too often, thus this significance is again given in this

term, that anger is one of the most overpowering enemies within us –

"One who has conquered anger" is One who established in his own

Purity. Earlier, the technique of anger was explained that when a

desire is unfulfilled, anger rises in a man's heart towards a desire

is unfulfilled, anger rises in a man's heart towards the obstacle

between him and his desire. The self is All-full (Paripoorna); it

cannot feel any need, want or desire. The Self, then Sree Narayana,

is ever without the low and ruinous passion called `anger.'

 

935. Bhayapahah –"One who destroys or removes all fear in the

samsaric life." Naturally, lord Narayana is the one sure harbour

wherein the boats of life, tossed mercilessly on the high seas of

passions, can find their calm of peace and total security.

 

936. Chaturasrah –"One who deals squarely with all." The term

Chaturasrah means a geometrical square of equal sides. Sree Narayana

distributes the results of actions equally to all: each one can get

only the exact reward of his own previous actions. Thus, Narayana

bestows justly and squarely upon all.

 

937. Gabheeraatmaa –"One who, in his real Nature, is too deep to be

fathomed by the frail instrument of our mind." Depth here indicates

the profoundness –the supreme essence pervading the Universe is

unfathomably profound in its significance and glory.

 

938. Vidisah –"One who is unique in his giving." He is divinely

liberal, magnificently benevolent in fulfilling the earnest desires

of all his true devotees.

 

939. Vyaadisah –"One who is unique in his Commanding –Power." One who

orders even the phenomenal powers, the deities and gods.

 

940. Disah –"One who advises and gives knowledge." It is the self who

is author of the Vedas, nay, the very theme and essence of the Vedas.

Lord Narayana, in the form of the sruti-texts, gives to man the

knowledge of the self.

 

 

 

Stanza 101

 

anaadirbhoorbhuvo lakahmeeh suveero ruchiraangadah

Janano janajanmaadir bheemo bheemaparaakramah.

 

 

941. Anaadih –"One who is the first cause" –and who is himself the

uncaused. The eternal, the Beginingless is Sree Narayana.

 

942. Bhoorbhuvah –"the very substratum or support for the earth."

Since the earth revolves in the space in which the universe exists

and revolves is the supreme, Narayana.

 

943. Lakshmeeh –"One who is wealthy, the richness or glory of the

universe." If self were not, then all would have been inert, unborn,

deed. As the one life every-where, as pure existence, all the glories

of this dynamic Universe are in him and from him alone.

 

There is a reading wherein the terms 942 and 943 are coupled, in

which case their combined meaning would be: "One who is the glory in

the universe and in the interspace everywhere."

 

944. Suveerah –"One who moves through various ways which are all

divinely glorious." Or, One who exhibits in all his Incarnations the

inimitable splendour of valour in his actions and achievements.

 

945. Ruchiraangadah –"One who wears resplendent shoulder-caps" –a

kind of ornament used by ancient Indian kings to protect their upper

arms and shoulders from their enemies slashing swords.

 

946. Jananah –"He who delivers all living creatures." Lord Sree

Narayana is the great Father of all living beings as all the universe

comes from him alone. He alone was before all creation; from him

alone everything has risen; in him everything exists, is nurtured and

nourished by his Glory. Thus, as the very progenitor of the universe,

Sree Narayana, the Self, is the only jagat-Eesvara (Lord of the

universe).

 

947. Janajanmaadih –"One who is the sole Cause of birth for all

living creatures in the universe." The immediate cause is, of course,

the vaasanaas of each being, but the real and ultimate cause in the

self, Sree Narayana.

 

948. Bheemah –"One whose form is terrible and frightening to the

sinners.Oh, Glorious Sir, seeing yours wonderful but awesome from,

the whole world is shuddering with fear," cried Arjuna upon beholding

the cosmic Form of the lord. He adds: "Having seen Thy Immeasurable

Form … the worlds are terrified and so am I." Again, "On seeing thee

touching the sky…my heart is stricken with dread and I find no

courage nor peace, O Vishnu."

 

949. Bheemaparaakramah –"One whose prowess is irresistible and

fearful to his enemies."

 

 

 

Stanza 102

 

aadhaaranilayo-adhaata pushpahaasah prajaagarah

oordhvagah satpathaachaarah praanadah prranavah panah.

 

 

950. Aadhaaranilayah –"One who is the fundamental sustainer" –the

support for all that exists. All things and all beings are supported

by the earth which itself rests upon the lord, the self, that each

mind projects the entire world of names and forms.

 

951. Adhaataa –"Above whom there is no other to control or to

command" –One who is the supreme controller of all. He is the Law;

the eternal truth is that the Law and the Law-Giver are one and the

same.

 

952. Pushpahaasah –"He who shines like an opening flower." The bud

opens and manifests into the lord at the time of deluge existed as

the total Unmanifest, and there after, at the maturity of the

vaasanaas, opens up as the manifest world of things and beings, He

came to be indicated by this term.

 

953. Prajaagarah –"Ever-Awaked" –He who knows no sleep. Sleep

means `non-apprehension.' This `non-apprehension' of reality is

called `Avidyaa' (nescience) which produces our `mis-apprehension' of

I and mine, and the world of pains and shocks. Since Narayana is the

self, He is `Ever-available" and is never asleep to his Eternal-

Divine-Nature.

 

954. Oordhvagah –"One who walks the path of truth" –a path which

other implicitly follow to reach the Truth Inifinite. "Whatever an

adored one does, other people will implicitly follow," warns Krishna

in Bhagava Geeta. Lord is the standard of perfection" and all

devotees place him as the ideal –trying to imitate, in their own

lives, His Absolute Goodness, Absolute Love and Absolute Peace.

 

956. Praanadah –"One who gives `Praana' to all." The term `Praana' in

our Sastras means the physiological functions, the manifestations of

life in man. Therefore, Narayana, the self, is the Vital Source from

which all sense organs, mind and intellect barrow their power of

perception, capacities of feeling and their faculties of thinking and

understanding.

 

957. Pranavah –"Om-kaara is Pranava." The Infinite reality is

indicated by `OM' in the Vedas. `OM' is the manifesting sound of the

supreme self. Therefore, Sree Narayana is called `Pranavah': meaning

he is of the `nature of Omkaara."

 

958. Panah –"The supreme Manager of the universe." The root `Pana'

means "to transact." By giving the exact rewards for all actions,

Lord both orders and justly manages all activities of each

individuals and things constituting this scientifically precise

universe.

 

 

 

Stanza 103

 

pramaanam prananilayah praanabhrit praanajeevanah

tattvam tattvavidekaatmaa janmamrityujaraatigah.

 

 

959. Pramaanam –"He whose very form is the Vedas" –which are the

only `proof' for the Eternal Reality. Or, we may read it: He who is

pure Infinite Consciousness (Prajnaanam) as we have it in the great

Commandment, "Consciousness is the Infinite Reality."

 

960. Praananilayah –"He in whom all `praanas' stand established." He

who is very substratum –vital foundation –for all `activities'

manifested in a living organism.

 

961. Praana-brit –"He who rules over all `Praanas' –Sree Hari is the

one who causes everyone to eat, digest, feel energized, act, achieve

the fruits thereof, grow old and die. In all `activities,' the great

One-commanding, Factor-Divine, Sree Narayana, the self, presides in

silent detachment, and by His Presence He initiates and maintains all

these activities in all living creatures upon the earth's surface.

 

962. Praana-jeevanah –"He who maintains the life-birth in all living

creatures." This interpretation is not a happy one as this meaning

has just come in the preceding, endearing term. In love, of course,

there is no rule that the lover should not repeat the same loving

words to address his beloved. But, we can find yet a new depth of

suggestion if we understand this term to mean "One who is the very

life-giving divine-touch in every breath."

 

963. Tattvam–"the Reality" –that which is eternal, the essence. "That

which one gains in subjective realization is the self," Sree Narayana.

 

964. Tattvavit –"One who has realized fully the reality" –meaning the

original essential nature of the self. On realizing the self, the

individual become the self and, therefore, Sree Narayana, that very

self, is One who has realized fully the Reality which is His Own

Nature Divine.

 

965. Ekaatmaa –"The Advaita Reality" –Narayana is the One self, the

Oversoul, Who expresses himself as the individualities of the

infinite entities in the universe.

 

966. Janma-mrityu-jaraa-atigah –"One who knows no change or

modifications in Himself." Ever finite object in the world undergoes

constant `change' and each of them is extremely painful. They are

birth, growth, decay, and the Eternal, the changeless Self, Sree

Narayana, Ever- the-same Supreme. Geeta thunders the nature of the

self to be "ever-birthless and never dying," and once It has existed,

Self never becomes non-existent.

 

 

 

Stanza 104

 

bhoorbhuvah svastarustaarah savitaaa prapitaamahah

yajno yajnapatiryajvaa yajnaango yajnavaahmah.

 

 

967. Bhoor-bhuvas-svas-taruh –"One who is snap in the tree-of-life

existing in all the universe of the higher world, our-world and the

lower world." The famous Vedic terms bhooh Bhuvah and Svah connote

the three worlds (lokas). The world `Loka' in Sanskrit means "a field

of experience." Therefore, in fact, these three terms, called

Vyaahritees, subjectively represents all our experiences in the

walking, dream and deep-sleep states of consciousness. His constant

Yajna to nurture and nourish the Universe. So, this epithet has been

given to Sree Narayana, the infinite Self, the glorious Essence (Sap)

that pervades the entire Tree-of-Life-flowering out to even embrace

all experiences in all planes of Consciousness. Everywhere, in the

everything at all times.

 

968. Tarrah –"One who helps all to cross –over" –the Eternal Boat-

man, to whom, if the devotees can surrender in unswerving faith and

true devotion, he will surely row them across the "Ocean of samsara:"

that one is Taarah. Through exclusive, devoted meditation, alert with

understanding, the individuality in each of us wakes up to the higher

plane – and there is Be-attitude to experience the Self, the eternal

Brahman – Sree Hari.

 

969. Savitaa –"He who is the father of All" –Who is the eternal

father of the entire Universe.

 

970. Pra-pitaamahah –"He who is the father of even the `Father of all

Beings,' the creator, Brahmaaji, of the trinity." The creator Himself

rose from the Absolute self. Creator is known in our scriptural

language as Pitaamaha –the Father.

 

971. Yajnah –"One whose very nature is yajna." The term yajna

means "work undertaken with a pure spirit of total dedication in

complete co-operative endeavor with total selflessness, there is Sree

Narayana in action through His creatures.

 

972. Yajna-patih –"The lord of all yajnas." I am the `Enjoyer' in all

self –dedicated, co-operative endeavors (Yajna). These are the joyous

words of the lord who Himself declares; "The `Enjoyer' and the `lord'

in all yajnas am I."

 

973. Yajvaa –"The one who performs Yajna according to the strict

prescriptions laid down in Vedas" –the one who maintains in ll his

divine actions the true Yajna spirit.

 

974. Yajnaangah –"One whose limbs are the `things' employed in

Yajna." In Harivamsa we told that `things' are the very aspects of

Lord Sree Narayana.

 

975. Yajna-vaahanah –"One who fulfils Yajnas in complete and exact

accord with the Vedic instructions."

 

 

 

Stanza 105

 

yajnabhridyajnakridyajnee yajnabhugyajnasaadhah

yajnaantakridyajnaguhyamannamannaada eva cha.

 

 

976. Yajna-bhrit –"the ruler of the Yajnas" –the One who helps us to

conclude successfully all our `good, dedicated. Selfless acts of

service to others' –Yajnas.

 

977. Yajna-Krit –"One who performs Yajna." The same term also mean

One who destroys the yajnas. The term Yajna connotes all noble and

divine actions of service and love undertaken in a pure sense of God

dedication, selflessness and joy. Lord issued forth the creation as

an act of yajna, and in the end He must also undertake the total

dissolution of this very yajna. Sometimes this is interpreted as "One

who `performs' the yajnas of the good people and one who `destroys'

the Yajnas of the evil minded folk."

 

978. Yajnee –"One who is constant `Enjoyer' of the perpetual Yajnas."

In all Yajnas, because every act is Narayana –centered-god-dedicated-

to him alone is the attribute of being the only single `Enjoyer.'

 

979. Yajnee –"All that is offered into the scared Fire during a

Yajna, though with an invocation to any of the deities, in tender

devotion and joy. Goes to Him alone, the "One receiver of all that is

offered," for all deities are but Narayana in different forms.

 

980. Yajna-saadhanah –"One who fulfills all Yajnas." It is by his

grace alone all noble endeavours, undertaken in an honest and true

sincerity, gain spectacular success.

 

981. Yajnaantakrit –"One who performs the last, concluding act in all

Yajnas." The final item in a yajna is the "total –offerings" (Poorna-

Aahuti) when Sree Narayana is reverently and earnestly invoked.

Without this prayer-ritual. Yajna is never complete. Sree Hari,

therefore, is of the form of Poorna-Aahuti -in the sense that

when `total' surrender of all vehicles and their actions is

accomplished, the transcendental experience of the Self, Narayana

alone, comes to manifest in all His divine Splendour.

 

Some commentators have, however, taken the meaning of the Yajna-anta-

not as "the last item in yajna" but as `anta,' the `fruit' of the

yajna by which they bestow the meaning that Narayana is the "One who

gives away the `fruits' for all Hari-dedicated, selfless acts of love

and service."

 

982. yagna-guhyam –"Sree Narayana is the most profound truth to be

realised in all yajnas." The self is the most noble truth to be

sought through `offerings' all the `Dravya' (objects) into

the "consciousness" (Fire) in the "body" (kunda). This kind of

subjective-Yajna is called in the Geeta as "Knowledge-Yajna." This is

also called in the Vedas as Brahma-Yajna.

 

983. Annam –"One who has himself become the `food' " –sense –objects

which are the `food' consumed by the sense –organs. As a verb it can

be used as One who "Eats" the whole universe at the time of the great

dissolution. At that time, he is the one in whom the world remains

absorbed in the pralaya, just as our individual world each day gets

dissolved in our sleep. The one in whom alone the world of names and

forms can remain in their `seed-form,' is Sree Narayana, the self.

 

984. Annaadah –"One who eats the `food.' " not only the objective

world is the projection on Narayana, but the subjective-enjoyer –the

individuality, the ego, that experiences-is also Narayana. The self,

functioning through the "equipment" is the jeevaatman, the

individuality in each of us who "experiences." Thus the self is the

both `food' (Annam) and `eater-of-food' (Annaadah) just as our own

waking-mind becomes the "experiencer" and the "experienced" in our

dream-world.

 

 

 

Stanza 106

 

aatnayonih svayamjaato vaikhaanah saamagaayanah

devakeenandanah srashtaa kshiteesah paapanaasanah.

 

 

985. Aatma-yohin –"One who is himself the `material cause' (Upaadaana

Kaarana) for himself;" the self born, the uncaused cause.

 

986. Svayam-jaatah –"One who, as the lord of the universe, has no

other `Instrumental cause' (Nimitta-Kaarana) in projecting Himself."

 

Three cause are necessary in all `creation' in the pluralistic world:

the Material cause' (mud), the "Instrumental cause' (wheel), and

the `Efficient cause' (the pot maker). In sree Narayana's self-

projection, as in the dream, that all these three causes are He,

Himself, is shown in these term.

 

987. Vai-Khaanah –"The one who dug through the earth" –cutting

through the denseness of the gross to reach, apprehend and kill the

subtle Hirnyaksha, the terrible and the monstrous who had tried to

destroy the spiritual values in the world. The self has to reach us

to destroy the ego in us and give us the `liberation' from our evil

adherence to the body-mind-intellect.

 

988. saama-gaayanah –"One who signs the Saama-songs."

 

989. Devakeenandhanah –"He who appeared as born to Devakee in his

Incarnation as Krishna." And since Devakee could only, from afar,

see, watch and enjoy the pranks and play of her blessed child in

Gokula, Krishna is called as the "Joy of Devakee" (Devakee-nandhana).

 

990. Srashtaa –"One who creates." Even the Creator can perform his

job only by drawing his abilities and capacities from the infinite

self, Sree Narayana.

 

991. Kshiteesah –"One who is the lord of the earth." Sree Narayana is

the husband of mother Earth. He is her protector. Her nurtuer and

nourisher. Her, earth may stand for all that is gross –the entire

maayaa-and Narayana is the Lakshmee-Pati.

 

992. Paapa-naasanah –meditating upon whom, all vaasanaas (sins) are

liquidated. When the individuals, surrendering in love to Him, acts

and fulfils his duties, all his existing vaasanaas are destroyed and

no new ones are created –this is the very root in the theory of karma

Yoga in the Vedas. Through meditation upon the self, all sins are

dissolved and totally removed.

 

 

 

Stanza 107

 

Samkhabhirnnandakee chakree saarngadhanvaa gadaadharah

Rathaangapaanirakshobhyah sarvapraharanaayudhah.

 

 

993. Samkha-bhrit –"One who has the divine conch

named "Paanchajanya." The word meaning is this term pancha-janya

is "that which is born of the five" (sense organs), so it stands for

the mind. Mind being the seat of ego, the sastras declare that the

conch in the divine hand of Sree Narayana is the ego-factor

(Ahamkaara-Tattva) in our personality.

 

994. Nandakee –The lord's sword is called Nandaka. Therefore,this

term indicates one who holds and wields the Nandaka sword. The word

Nanda-kam mean "that which brings bliss." The Sastras sing that the

divine sword in the sacred hands of the lord hari represents the

knowledge-Spiritual (Vidyaa-Tattva) with which the seeker can destroy

all his "ignorance" of the self in him.

 

995. Chakree –"one who carries the discus called Sudarsana." The term

Su-Darsana means "that gives the auspicious vision." The sastras

attribute to this discus-Divine the representation of the human mind.

 

996. Saarnga-dhanvaa –"One who aims his unerring bow called Saarnga."

This bow of Narayana is glorified in our texts as representing the

Ego, as the `apex' of all the sense organs, Ahankaara-Tattva. In this

concluding Stanza, the instruments of Blessing in sree Narayana's

hands are remembered with reverence and devotion.

 

997. Gadda-dharah –"One who holds his divine club (Mace) celebrated

as Kaumodakee –which generates and spreads beauty and joy." This Mace

is described as representing the intellect in man (Buddhi-Tattva).

 

998. Rathanga-paanih –"The traditional meaning is, of course, "One

who has the `wheel of the chariot' as his weapon." This means the

discuss which already has been mentioned in this very Stanza as

Chakree. But, there are others who would like to interpret this term

in other ways. In a glorification-Hymn or devotional-Chant,

repetition is no sin; in fact, it should be quite natural.

 

999. Akshobhyah –"One who cannot be exasperated by anyone, by any act

or acts, however blasphemous they may be." One whose peace and calm

cannot be stormed out by any happening in his outer world; Ever-

peaceful. The term suggests Infinite patience, love and kindness

towards man and his frailties.

 

1000. Sarva-praharanaayudhah –"He who has all implements for all

kinds of assault and fight." No enemy can surprise Him.

The `conqueror of all.' One who has weapons to meet any missile.

However powerful.

 

 

 

 

 

Sree Sarva-praharanaayudhah Om Namah iti

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

[The 1000 names end here...]

 

 

 

 

 

Concluding Verses:

 

 

 

1. Itidam Kirtaniyasya Keshavasya Mahatmanahah

 

Naamnaam Sahasram Divyaanaam Asheshena Prakeerthitham

 

 

 

 

1. In the above verses have been given a complete enumeration of the

thousand divine names of the the Great Being Keshava, who is the fit

object for all praise and prayer.

 

 

 

2. Ya Idam Srunuyaan Nityam Yaschaapi Parikeertayet

 

Naashubham Praapnuyaat Kinchit Somutreha Cha Maanavah

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

2. Nothing evil or inauspicious will befall a man here or hereafter

who daily hears or repeats these names

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

----

----

----

 

 

----

----

----

 

5. Bhaktimaan Yah Sadotthyaaya Suchis-tadgata Maanasahah

 

Sahasram Vaasudevasya Naamnaam Etat Prakeertayet

 

 

Whichever devoted man, getting up early in the morning and purifying

himself, repeats this hymn devoted to Vaasudeva, with a mind that is

concentrated on Him...

 

 

 

6. Yashah Prapnoti Vipulam Jnaati Praadhaanyam Eva Cha

 

Achalaam Sriyam Aapnoti Sreyah Praapnotyanuttamam

 

 

That man attains to great fame, leadership among his peers, wealth

that is secure and the supreme good unsupassed by anything....

 

7. Na Bhayam Kvachid Aapnoti Veeryam Tejasya Vindati

 

Bhavatyarogo Dyutimaan Bala-roopa-gunaanvitahah

 

 

 

 

He will be free from all fears and be endowed with great courage and

energy and he will be free from diseases. Beauty of form, strength of

body and mind, and virtuous character will be natural to him.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

10. Vaasudeva-ashrayo Martyo Vaasudeva Paraayanahah

 

Sarva Paapa Vishudhaatmaa Yaati Brahma Sanaatanam

 

 

 

 

Free from all sins, a man devoted to Vaasudeva and completely

dependent on Him attains to the eternal status of Brahman.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

No inauspicious things can happen to a devotee of Vasudeva. The

person will conquer the cycle of birth, death, fear and disease.

 

 

 

 

One who reads this hymn every day with devotion and attention attains

peace of mind, patience, prosperity, mental stability, memory and

reputation.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Such a person is not caught by anger, binding, jealousy, or any

inauspicious event. Such a bhakta becomes a "punyatma" and merges

with the Purshottama (i.e. supreme being)

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

All scriptures consider right conduct as the foremost requisite.

Dharma is based upon right conduct, and Dharma, Achyuta is the

master.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

The rishis, pitrus, the devas, the great elements and in fact all

things moving and unmoving constituting this universe have originated

from Naaraayana.

 

 

 

 

 

 

The Yoga, Jnaana, Saamkya, sciences, arts, works, Vedas, scriptures,

spiritual illumination -- all these have originated from Janaardhana.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Mahaavishnu is the one all-comprehending being who appears as many.

He is the essence of all brings, the consumer of the world, the

indestructible one, and the master of all. Pervading all the three

worlds, He enjoys all entities constituting them.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Whoever desires advancement and happiness should repeat this

devotional hymn on Vishnu composed by Vyaasa.

 

 

 

 

Never will defeat attend on a man who adores the Lotus-eyed One, who

is the Master of all the worlds. Who is birthless, and out of whom

the worlds have originated, and into whom they dissolve.

 

 

 

----

--

 

 

 

 

----

--

 

 

----

--

 

 

----

--

 

 

----

--

 

 

 

 

----

--

 

 

 

 

 

----

--

 

 

 

 

----

--

Link to comment
Share on other sites

Join the conversation

You are posting as a guest. If you have an account, sign in now to post with your account.
Note: Your post will require moderator approval before it will be visible.

Guest
Reply to this topic...

×   Pasted as rich text.   Paste as plain text instead

  Only 75 emoji are allowed.

×   Your link has been automatically embedded.   Display as a link instead

×   Your previous content has been restored.   Clear editor

×   You cannot paste images directly. Upload or insert images from URL.

Loading...
×
×
  • Create New...